Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a bishop_n word_n 2,848 5 3.7038 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A66367 Truth vindicated, against sacriledge, atheism, and prophaneness and likewise against the common invaders of the rights of Kings, and demonstrating the vanity of man in general. By Gryffith Williams now Lord Bishop of Ossory. Williams, Gryffith, 1589?-1672. 1666 (1666) Wing W2674; ESTC R222610 619,498 452

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n 1._o thing_n impar_fw-la congressus_fw-la a_fw-la hilli_fw-la infoelix_fw-la pver_fw-la too_o weak_a every_o way_n to_o contest_v with_o so_o many_o magnanimous_a man_n of_o arm_n that_o be_v encompass_v with_o so_o many_o heroic_a friend_n i_o must_v 1._o appeal_v to_o thou_o o_o my_o god_n and_o sweet_a saviour_n jesus_n christ_n and_o desire_v thou_o with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n arise_v o_o god_n maintain_v thy_o own_o cause_n or_o as_o our_o last_o translation_n have_v it_o plead_v thy_o own_o cause_n 74.23_o psal_n 74.23_o for_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o maintain_v it_o unless_o thou_o will_v arise_v to_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o helpless_a and_o pluck_v thy_o right_a hand_n out_o of_o thy_o bosom_n to_o consume_v the_o enemy_n and_o let_v not_o man_n have_v the_o upper_a hand_n but_o do_v thou_o to_o they_o as_o thou_o do_v unto_o the_o midianite_n unto_o sisera_n and_o unto_o jabin_n at_o the_o brook_n of_o kison_n which_o perish_v at_o endor_n and_o become_v as_o the_o dung_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o say_v let_v we_o take_v to_o ourselves_o the_o house_n of_o god_n in_o possession_n and_o especial_o to_o they_o that_o not_o only_o say_v but_o also_o do_v violent_o and_o sacrilegious_o mis-inform_a good_a and_o pious_a prince_n and_o take_v both_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o land_n of_o the_o church_n into_o their_o possession_n o_o my_o god_n make_v they_o like_o a_o wheel_n that_o be_v always_o totter_v and_o turn_v and_o as_o the_o stubble_n before_o the_o wind_n 83.12_o psal_n 83.12_o that_o be_v ever_o shake_v and_o never_o at_o rest_n and_o like_a as_o the_o fire_n that_o burn_v up_o the_o wood_n and_o as_o the_o flame_n that_o consume_v the_o mountain_n persecute_v they_o even_o so_o with_o thy_o tempest_n and_o make_v they_o afraid_a with_o thy_o storm_n that_o they_o may_v understand_v what_o a_o heinous_a sin_n it_o be_v to_o commit_v sacrilege_n and_o to_o rob_v the_o live_a god_n by_o hinder_v and_o disinable_v his_o servant_n to_o do_v he_o service_n and_o to_o ascribe_v the_o honour_n due_a unto_o his_o name_n 2_o i_o must_v and_o will_v to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o my_o ability_n thing_n 2._o thing_n demonstrate_v unto_o all_o church-robber_n the_o heinousness_n of_o this_o sin_n and_o the_o fearful_a punishment_n thereof_o and_o to_o that_o end_n 1._o i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o what_o i_o have_v write_v above_o 45_o year_n ago_o concern_v sacrilege_n and_o what_o you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o true_a church_n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o pag._n 429._o with_o some_o amplification_n and_o explication_n thereof_o thing_n 2d_o thing_n 2._o i_o will_v upon_o the_o resolution_n and_o religious_a intention_n of_o the_o good_a and_o godly_a king_n david_n to_o build_v god_n a_o house_n for_o his_o servant_n to_o meet_v in_o it_o to_o worship_v he_o show_v unto_o you_o the_o necessity_n and_o use_n of_o cathedral_n and_o church_n for_o god_n worship_n and_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n therein_o and_o the_o full_a description_n and_o detestation_n of_o this_o horrible_a and_o most_o odious_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o i_o will_v do_v my_o best_a to_o enlarge_v this_o point_n unto_o the_o full_a that_o so_o my_o reader_n may_v reap_v the_o full_a benefit_n of_o this_o my_o discourse_n and_o the_o easy_o retain_v in_o his_o memory_n what_o he_o read_v in_o it_o and_o that_o the_o same_o good_a doctrine_n and_o instruction_n the_o often_o and_o the_o more_o usual_o they_o be_v publish_v and_o in_o the_o more_o large_a volume_n they_o be_v print_v may_v the_o more_o likely_a have_v their_o fate_n to_o continue_v when_o as_o small_a treatise_n especial_o not_o methodical_o digest_v be_v the_o soon_o neglect_v and_o do_v suffer_v through_o the_o iniquity_n of_o time_n to_o be_v bury_v in_o oblivion_n chap._n ii_o of_o sacrilege_n what_o it_o be_v how_o manifold_a it_o be_v and_o how_o it_o have_v be_v always_o punish_v and_o never_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o divine_a vengeance_n usurpatio_fw-la sacrilege_n what_o it_o be_v r●i_fw-la sacrae_fw-la violatio_fw-la aut_fw-la usurpatio_fw-la 1._o sacrilege_n which_o the_o greek_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o sacrilegious_a person_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o usurpation_n or_o the_o violation_n of_o any_o sacred_a thing_n and_o this_o violation_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v for_o any_o kind_n of_o irreverence_n or_o dishonour_v of_o it_o &_o sacrilegium_fw-la dicitur_fw-la qua_fw-la si_fw-la sacrilaedium_fw-la say_v innocentius_n 20.25_o thom._n primae_fw-la secundae_fw-la q_o 99_o prov._n 20.25_o and_o as_o aquinas_n say_v all_o that_o be_v sacrilege_n which_o be_v do_v to_o the_o irreverence_n of_o any_o sacred_a thing_n and_o solomon_n say_v it_o be_v a_o abomination_n to_o the_o lord_n to_o devour_v thing_n that_o be_v sanctify_v et_fw-la non_fw-la omne_fw-la quod_fw-la displicet_fw-la dicitur_fw-la abominatio_fw-la and_o not_o all_o thing_n that_o displease_v god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v abomination_n sed_fw-la quod_fw-la valde_fw-la d●splicet_fw-la but_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v most_o high_o and_o exceed_o displease_v the_o lord_n vitiorum_fw-la peraldus_n summa_fw-la vitiorum_fw-la be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o abomination_n say_v peraldus_n 2._o you_o may_v observe_v that_o this_o high_a displease_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n be_v manifold_a person_n sacrilege_n threefold_a and_o commit_v 3._o way_n 1._o way_n against_o sacred_a person_n but_o especial_o it_o consist_v in_o these_o three_o thing_n 1._o the_o violation_n and_o abuse_v offer_v to_o sacred_a person_n such_o as_o be_v king_n and_o queen_n that_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v nurse_v father_n and_o nurse_v mother_n unto_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o bishop_n priest_n and_o other_o minister_n that_o be_v consecrate_v to_o serve_v god_n at_o his_o altar_n whosoever_o do_v irreverent_o abuse_v any_o of_o they_o either_o in_o word_n or_o deed_n commit_v sacrilege_n because_o they_o be_v sacred_a person_n and_o so_o agesilaus_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o he_o do_v great_o wonder_v why_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_o account_v in_o the_o number_n of_o sacrilegious_a person_n qui_fw-la laederent_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la diis_fw-la supplicarent_fw-la vel_fw-la deos_fw-la venerarentur_fw-la which_o do_v any_o way_n hurt_v or_o wrong_v those_o which_o do_v supplicate_v or_o intercede_v for_o we_o and_o worship_v god_n whereby_o that_o most_o prudent_a prince_n signify_v eos_n non_fw-la tantum_fw-la sacrilegos_fw-la esse_fw-la probus_n aemilius_z probus_n qui_fw-la deos_fw-la ipsos_fw-la aut_fw-la templorum_fw-la ornatum_fw-la spoliarent_fw-la sed_fw-la eos_fw-la maxim_n qui_fw-la deorum_fw-la mini●tros_fw-la &_o prae●ones_fw-la contumeliis_fw-la affi●erent_fw-la say_v ae●ili●●_n probus_n 10.16_o luke_n 10.16_o because_o that_o as_o our_o saviour_n say_v he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o be_v that_o despise_v i_o despise_v he_o that_o send_v i_o place_n 2._o way_n against_o sacred_a place_n 2._o the_o profane_v of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o abuse_n of_o any_o place_n consecrate_v for_o to_o be_v the_o place_n of_o god_n service_n be_v no_o less_o than_o sacrilege_n 3._o that_o be_v sacrilege_n and_o he_o be_v a_o sacrilegious_a person_n etc._n 3._o way_n against_o sacred_a thing_n 1._o sacrament_n 2._o vessel_n 3_o ornament_n 4._o good_n 1_o land_n house_n etc._n etc._n which_o not_o only_o dishonour_v and_o irreverent_o use_v the_o sacred_a person_n or_o prophane_v the_o holy_a place_n but_o do_v take_v away_o any_o sacred_a thing_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n felonious_o by_o way_n of_o stealth_n from_o any_o sacred_a place_n quia_fw-la tale_n furtum_fw-la sacrilegium_fw-la est_fw-la because_o such_o a_o theft_n be_v term_v sacrilege_n which_o every_o other_o stealth_n or_o unjust_a take_n or_o detain_v of_o our_o neighbour_n good_n be_v not_o so_o nam_fw-la undecunque_fw-la tollere_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la sacrilegium_fw-la committere_fw-la for_o all_o stealth_n and_o every_o unjust_a take_n away_o of_o good_n be_v not_o sacrilege_n but_o he_o that_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v sacred_a or_o consecrate_v and_o dedicate_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v a_o robber_n of_o god_n and_o a_o sacrilegious_a person_n say_v s._n augustine_n and_o so_o s._n hierom_n say_v amico_fw-la rapere_fw-la furtum_fw-la est_fw-la 34._o augustine_n super_fw-la johan_n &_o habetur_fw-la 23._o q._n 4._o sacrilege_n how_o different_a from_o theft_n hierom._n ep._n 34._o sed_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la fraudare_fw-la sacrilegium_fw-la est_fw-la to_o steal_v and_o take_v away_o the_o good_n of_o our_o friend_n or_o neighbour_n be_v theft_n but_o to_o take_v away_o the_o good_n or_o to_o defraud_v or_o cheat_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o any_o thing_n that_o belong_v unto_o the_o church_n be_v sacrilege_n yea_o voluntas_fw-la sola_fw-la quoad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la punitur_fw-la as_o he_o that_o
sight_n of_o other_o man_n honour_n as_o alcibiades_n with_o the_o glory_n and_o honour_n give_v to_o miltiades_n be_v spur_v forward_o to_o the_o like_a achievement_n that_o he_o may_v attain_v unto_o the_o like_a glory_n whereas_o otherwise_o as_o it_o be_v a_o maxim_n in_o warlike_a affair_n that_o exprobrata_fw-la militia_n creditur_fw-la perish_v take_v away_o the_o reward_n and_o learning_n perish_v quae_fw-la irremunerata_fw-la transitur_fw-la that_o service_n be_v think_v base_a and_o that_o warfare_n not_o worth_a the_o follow_n which_o be_v unworthy_a of_o any_o reward_n so_o it_o be_v true_a in_o academical_a science_n and_o all_o other_o art_n whatsoever_o that_o inhonorata_fw-la virtus_fw-la languescit_fw-la virtue_n despise_v and_o leave_v unrewarded_a will_n soon_o faint_a and_o languish_v and_o all_o good_a art_n even_o of_o themselves_o without_o pressure_n will_v speedy_o decay_v which_o be_v the_o only_a course_n and_o the_o most_o spiteful_a that_o julian_n take_v to_o root_v out_o christianity_n to_o take_v away_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n for_o he_o know_v that_o as_o both_o seneca_n and_o tacitus_n say_v sublatis_fw-la studiorum_fw-la praemiis_fw-la ipsa_fw-la studia_fw-la pereunt_fw-la hospitality_n 3._o the_o buy_v and_o sell_v of_o church_n live_n will_v be_v the_o decay_n of_o all_o hospitality_n 3._o i_o say_v that_o this_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o spiritual_a promotion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n will_v be_v as_o it_o be_v indeed_o and_o have_v be_v of_o a_o long_a time_n ever_o since_o the_o birth_n of_o this_o bastard_n brat_n the_o extirpation_n of_o all_o hospitality_n among_o the_o clergy_n the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o hospitality_n and_o saint_n augustine_n to_o enforce_v this_o duty_n the_o soon_o to_o be_v observe_v say_v 25._o aug._n de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la sermone_fw-la 25._o foecundus_fw-la est_fw-la agre_z pauperum_fw-la citò_fw-la reddit_fw-la dominantibus_fw-la fructum_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la paruis_fw-la magna_fw-la pensare_fw-la the_o field_n of_o the_o poor_a be_v very_o profitable_a and_o yield_v his_o fruit_n very_o quick_o and_o that_o plentiful_o because_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o god_n other_o how_o our_o g●od_a work_n do_v further_a faith_n in_o other_o to_o render_v great_a thing_n to_o we_o for_o the_o small_a thing_n that_o we_o give_v to_o he_o and_o saint_n gregory_n say_v egentis_fw-la mentem_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la sermo_fw-la non_fw-la penetrate_v si_fw-la hunc_fw-la vel_fw-la illum_fw-la sermonem_fw-la apud_fw-la ejus_fw-la animum_fw-la manus_fw-la m_o sericordiae_fw-la non_fw-la commendat_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v do_v not_o pierce_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o needy_a man_n poor_a if_o they_o take_v away_o our_o land_n and_o sell_v our_o live_n how_o can_v we_o relieve_v the_o poor_a unless_o the_o hand_n of_o mercy_n do_v commend_v that_o word_n and_o reach_v it_o home_o unto_o he_o which_o be_v a_o very_a excellent_a true_a and_o most_o worthy_a say_n worthy_a to_o be_v remember_v and_o to_o be_v practise_v of_o all_o divine_n and_o yet_o now_o in_o these_o time_n and_o among_o we_o that_o i_o fear_v be_v true_a which_o the_o poor_a complain_v of_o that_o there_o be_v but_o small_a hospitality_n among_o the_o clergy_n but_o they_o ought_v to_o consider_v what_o the_o philosopher_n say_v nihil_fw-la that_fw-mi quod_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la he_o that_o have_v but_o scarce_o enough_o to_o maintain_v himself_o can_v spare_v but_o very_o little_a to_o relieve_v other_o and_o therefore_o see_v a_o minister_n must_v not_o get_v his_o live_n by_o any_o other_o mean_n then_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o that_o by_o his_o calling_n to_o be_v a_o minister_n and_o all_o his_o pain_n and_o diligence_n in_o his_o call_n he_o can_v get_v no_o mean_n unless_o he_o buy_v his_o live_n and_o when_o he_o buy_v it_o he_o be_v common_o set_v so_o far_o in_o debt_n that_o in_o haste_n poor_a the_o poor_a be_v not_o able_a to_o relieve_v the_o poor_a he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o recover_v himself_o out_o of_o his_o creditor_n book_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o a_o minister_n parson_n or_o vicar_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o be_v hospitable_a unto_o other_o when_o as_o the_o popish_a priest_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v dirge_n for_o their_o dinner_n so_o these_o poor_a preacher_n must_v read_v lecture_n for_o their_o maintenance_n which_o be_v many_o time_n as_o i_o have_v see_v it_o in_o some_o place_n make_v up_o out_o of_o the_o poor_a man_n box_n and_o the_o lecturer_n must_v preach_v placentia_fw-la lest_o his_o voluntary_a benefactor_n if_o he_o be_v too_o bold_a in_o their_o reproof_n shall_v subtract_v the_o pittance_n of_o their_o contribution_n a_o most_o lamentable_a thing_n that_o a_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n that_o ought_v free_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n must_v be_v thus_o fetter_v for_o want_v of_o mean_n and_o that_o they_o box_n minister_n in_o some_o place_n and_o at_o some_o time_n relieve_v out_o of_o the_o poor_a man_n box_n which_o shall_v have_v plenty_n that_o they_o may_v be_v enable_v to_o relieve_v the_o poor_a shall_v be_v bring_v to_o that_o scantling_n and_o penury_n as_o to_o be_v force_v to_o be_v relieve_v themselves_o out_o of_o the_o portion_n of_o the_o poor_a o_o consider_v this_o all_o you_o sacrilegious_a patron_n that_o sell_v your_o live_n and_o forget_v god_n lest_o he_o remember_v you_o and_o tear_v you_o to_o piece_n while_o there_o be_v none_o to_o help_v you_o 4._o if_o the_o observation_n of_o precedent_a thing_n may_v presage_v any_o future_a thing_n church_n 4._o the_o buy_v and_o s●lling_v of_o church_n live_n be_v the_o presage_n of_o some_o great_a evil_n unto_o th●_n church_n i_o say_v that_o this_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o church-living_n do_v portend_v and_o fore-signify_a some_o great_a and_o imminent_a evil_n both_o to_o the_o church_n and_o state_n for_o socrates_n in_o his_o eccles_n hist_o tell_v we_o that_o when_o some_o wicked_a soldier_n have_v profane_v the_o church_n and_o have_v sacrilegious_o rob_v her_o priest_n as_o now_o our_o soldier_n strive_v and_o study_v how_o to_o do_v the_o like_a one_o stand_v by_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o abuse_n of_o god_n house_n foreshoweth_a no_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v and_o socrates_n say_v he_o be_v not_o deceive_v because_o that_o in_o a_o very_a short_a time_n after_o it_o happen_v according_a as_o he_o fear_v and_o alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_fw-la say_v as_o he_o be_v cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o oxford_n that_o the_o flourish_a church_n of_o greece_n and_o armenia_n be_v forsake_v of_o god_n and_o have_v their_o candlestick_n that_o uphold_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n remove_v when_o they_o begin_v to_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o buy_v and_o sell_v the_o land_n good_n and_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o i_o advise_v and_o wish_v all_o that_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n after_o the_o church_n land_n house_n and_o good_n and_o all_o covetous_a patron_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o this_o sin_n of_o buy_v and_o sell_v what_o belong_v unto_o the_o church_n or_o to_o take_v away_o the_o land_n or_o house_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o sin_n so_o dangerous_a to_o themselves_o so_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o church_n and_o so_o ominous_a to_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o let_v they_o remember_v what_o i_o say_v before_o that_o if_o pharaoh_n in_o the_o time_n of_o that_o great_a famine_n which_o be_v in_o egypt_n 47._o gen._n 47._o make_v such_o provision_n for_o the_o priest_n that_o although_o all_o the_o other_o his_o subject_n be_v constrain_v to_o sell_v their_o land_n for_o sustenance_n yet_o the_o land_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v not_o sell_v neither_o have_v any_o of_o they_o any_o need_n to_o sell_v they_o and_o if_o popish_a priest_n that_o either_o preach_v not_o at_o all_o or_o preach_v their_o own_o tradition_n or_o some_o fabulous_a narration_n and_o fiction_n out_o of_o their_o legend_n be_v so_o rich_o keep_v and_o still_o be_v in_o france_n spain_n and_o italy_n on_o saint_n peter_n patrimony_n why_o shall_v they_o deal_v so_o hardly_o and_o so_o niggardly_o with_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o do_v sincere_o preach_v the_o truth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o their_o people_n as_o to_o sell_v unto_o they_o or_o take_v away_o from_o they_o that_o little_a which_o be_v leave_v and_o be_v most_o due_a unto_o they_o or_o if_o all_o this_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o this_o sin_n let_v they_o take_v heed_n of_o the_o prophet_n woe_n that_o cry_v out_o against_o all_o such_o dealer_n say_v vae_fw-la accumulanti_fw-la non_fw-la sva_fw-la woe_n be_v to_o he_o that_o heap_v together_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v none_o of_o his_o own_o 2.6_o hab._n 2.6_o and_o especial_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v
down_o until_o the_o day_n of_o solomon_n but_o solomon_n erect_v a_o temple_n as_o a_o stand_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o then_o until_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n for_o god_n people_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o gentile_n idolatrous_a temple_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o metropolitan_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v more_o than_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_n for_o it_o be_v national_a for_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o jury_n and_o after_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v unto_o the_o gentile_n and_o all_o nation_n begin_v to_o be_v convert_v then_o sundry_a ministerial_a church_n be_v erect_v according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o their_o bishop_n so_o that_o every_o particular_a bishop_n have_v his_o particular_a church_n after_o the_o manner_n and_o in_o imitation_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o have_v but_o one_o bishopric_n and_o one_o high_a priest_n or_o bishop_n have_v likewise_o but_o one_o cathedral-church_n for_o that_o whole_a nation_n and_o afterward_o when_o the_o bishop_n see_v the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n exceed_o increase_a evaristus_n first_o titulos_fw-la seu_fw-la paraesias_n in_fw-la urbe_fw-la roma_fw-it presbyteris_fw-la divisit_fw-la &_o post_fw-la eum_fw-la dionysius_n idem_fw-la fecit_fw-la and_o after_o he_o dionysius_n the_o pope_n devise_v parochial_a congregation_n and_o divide_v every_o bishopric_n into_o particular_a constant_a congregation_n which_o be_v but_o member_n and_o their_o church_n but_o the_o chapel_n of_o the_o diocesan_n and_o provincial_a church_n and_o the_o use_n for_o which_o both_o the_o cathedral_n and_o parochial_a church_n do_v serve_v be_v and_o be_v for_o the_o ●_z of_o god_n to_o meet_v in_o they_o for_o to_o worship_n god_n and_o this_o beside_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o time_n ab_fw-la origine_fw-la to_o this_o very_a day_n do_v sufficient_o conclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o they_o 1._o for_o as_o the_o body_n politic_a or_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v to_o be_v divide_v into_o his_o several_a limit_n province_n county_n prayer_n 1._o public_a prayer_n be_v more_o prevalent_a with_o god_n than_o the_o private_a prayer_n barony_n and_o the_o like_a so_o the_o collective_a and_o mystical_a body_n of_o god_n church_n be_v to_o be_v distribute_v into_o several_a congregation_n as_o the_o body_n natural_a be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o several_a part_n and_o parcel_n thereof_o and_o though_o as_o we_o be_v private_a and_o particular_a man_n the_o place_n and_o time_n and_o form_n of_o prayer_n and_o service_n of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o his_o necessity_n and_o private_a occasion_n yet_o as_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o public_a state_n either_o temporal_a or_o ecclesiastical_a church_n or_o commonwealth_n so_o the_o service_n that_o he_o owe_v and_o aught_o to_o perform_v either_o to_o the_o king_n or_o to_o god_n must_v needs_o be_v public_a and_o together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o state_n and_o so_o the_o public_a service_n be_v so_o much_o worthy_a than_o the_o private_a and_o excel_v the_o same_o as_o much_o as_o a_o society_n or_o congregation_n of_o man_n be_v worthy_a and_z excel_v one_o particular_a man_n and_o s._n chrysostom_n to_o show_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n private_a s._n chrysostom_n example_n to_o show_v the_o benefit_n of_o public_a prayer_n and_o how_o it_o excel_v the_o private_a and_o common-prayer_n before_o and_o above_o any_o private_a prayer_n or_o service_n say_v that_o as_o the_o coal_n of_o fire_n be_v scatter_v do_v yield_v but_o little_a heat_n and_o will_v soon_o die_v but_o when_o they_o be_v close_o heap_v together_o they_o will_v yield_v much_o heat_n and_o the_o fire_n continue_v long_o so_o a_o multitude_n of_o devout_a and_o faithful_a man_n gather_v together_o and_o with_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n pour_v forth_o their_o prayer_n and_o petition_n unto_o god_n their_o prayer_n be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o prevalent_a and_o more_o likely_a to_o obtain_v their_o request_n from_o god_n then_o when_o they_o be_v sever_v and_o offer_v up_o by_o every_o single_a person_n as_o a_o twist_a thread_n like_o a_o threefold_a cord_n be_v far_o strong_a than_o any_o two_o single_a one_o so_o though_o the_o prayer_n of_o one_o man_n be_v but_o weak_a yet_o the_o supplication_n of_o many_o man_n be_v very_o mighty_a and_o like_v unto_o the_o loud_a sound_n of_o thunder_n or_o the_o noise_n of_o many_o water_n as_o s._n basil_n say_v and_o the_o consent_n of_o desire_n the_o concord_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o unite_a love_n of_o joint_a assembly_n be_v so_o well-pleasing_a unto_o god_n that_o as_o a_o ho●y_a father_n say_v impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la multorum_fw-la preces_fw-la non_fw-la exaudiri_fw-la it_o be_v almost_o impossible_a but_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o such_o associate_v congregation_n shall_v be_v hear_v because_o as_o s._n ambrose_n say_v the_o public_a meeting_n of_o god_n people_n have_v a_o special_a promise_n of_o god_n presence_n to_o be_v with_o they_o as_o where_o christ_n say_v 18.20_o matth._n 18.20_o when_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n he_o will_v be_v there_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o king_n of_o niniveh_n call_v his_o people_n together_o to_o join_v with_o he_o in_o prayer_n to_o god_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v destroy_v and_o so_o beset_a god_n 4.11_o ionas_n 4.11_o or_o besiege_v god_n as_o tertullian_n say_v like_o a_o host_n of_o man_n their_o prayer_n be_v hear_v and_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o grace_n and_o s._n paul_n though_o he_o may_v have_v confidence_n his_o prayer_n shall_v speed_v with_o god_n assoon_o and_o obtain_v as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o yet_o do_v he_o confess_v that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 1.11_o 2_o cor._n 1.11_o together_o with_o his_o own_o prayer_n do_v much_o help_n and_o further_a his_o deliverance_n from_o those_o great_a trouble_n that_o he_o suffer_v in_o asia_n private_a 2._o public_a prayer_n more_o justifiab_n e_o then_o the_o private_a 2._o the_o public_a prayer_n and_o service_n of_o god_n have_v this_o prerogative_n above_o the_o private_a that_o they_o do_v assure_v we_o they_o be_v more_o lawful_a and_o shall_v soon_o be_v hear_v of_o god_n because_o the_o thing_n pray_v for_o and_o deprecate_v be_v judge_v to_o be_v good_a and_o needful_a and_o be_v so_o approve_v of_o by_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n when_o we_o hear_v they_o deprecate_v or_o desire_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o people_n congregation_n 3_o our_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n be_v more_o and_o more_o strengthen_v in_o the_o public_a congregation_n 3._o the_o convention_n or_o meeting_n of_o the_o people_n in_o such_o public_a place_n to_o serve_v god_n do_v sharpen_v the_o edge_n and_o as_o it_o be_v give_v life_n and_o strength_n to_o every_o particular_a man_n devotion_n for_o when_o through_o the_o frailty_n of_o our_o flesh_n our_o spirit_n wax_v dull_a and_o our_o zeal_n begin_v to_o grow_v sloggish_a to_o perform_v these_o holy_a duty_n the_o fervour_n that_o we_o see_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o congregation_n will_v mighty_o serve_v to_o stir_v up_o our_o thought_n and_o to_o quicken_v our_o devotion_n to_o sail_v along_o with_o our_o brethren_n to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o those_o godly_a exercise_n other_o 4._o they_o be_v help_v by_o the_o good_a example_n of_o other_o 4._o as_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v better_v and_o much_o further_v in_o his_o devotion_n and_o service_n of_o god_n by_o the_o good_a example_n that_o all_o the_o congregation_n do_v show_v unto_o he_o so_o the_o whole_a company_n that_o consider_v it_o be_v not_o a_o little_a damnify_v and_o offend_v at_o the_o waywardness_n and_o neglect_v of_o those_o particular_a person_n that_o come_v not_o unto_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n and_o so_o whereas_o the_o neglect_n of_o our_o private_a devotion_n be_v only_o hurtful_a to_o our_o self_n our_o refusal_n or_o remissness_n to_o come_v to_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o our_o religion_n do_v prejudice_n many_o and_z gives_z offence_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o you_o know_v what_o our_o saviour_n say_v 18.7_o matth._n 18.7_o woe_n to_o that_o man_n by_o who_o offence_n come_v and_o therefore_o woe_n to_o he_o that_o despise_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o god_n church_n and_o refuse_v to_o come_v unto_o they_o and_o for_o the_o prevent_n of_o this_o woe_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o reason_n former_o show_v 26.12_o psal_n 26.12_o the_o prophet_n david_n do_v so_o earnest_o desire_v to_o praise_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o congregation_n yea_o
2._o i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o affinity_n or_o likeness_n between_o those_o time_n of_o the_o israelite_n and_o our_o time_n and_o betwixt_o that_o people_n who_o be_v jew_n and_o we_o that_o be_v christian_n then_o be_v betwixt_o simon_n peter_n and_o simon_n magus_n or_o philip_n the_o apostle_n and_o philip_n king_n of_o macedon_n for_o we_o be_v not_o command_v to_o do_v against_o idolater_n as_o they_o be_v command_v to_o do_v against_o the_o canaanite_n as_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o make_v covenant_n of_o peace_n or_o to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o place_n and_o they_o be_v comm●nded_v to_o root_v out_o and_o to_o destroy_v all_o that_o people_n and_o we_o have_v no_o such_o injunction_n to_o prohibit_v we_o to_o trade_n and_o traffic_v either_o with_o papist_n jew_n or_o gentile_n neither_o may_v the_o reform_a church_n and_o protestant_n put_v other_o their_o neighbour_n to_o the_o sword_n only_o because_o they_o be_v idolater_n or_o of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n but_o they_o be_v rather_o to_o labour_v for_o their_o conversion_n as_o st._n paul_n do_v the_o idolater_n of_o athens_n and_o not_o to_o work_v their_o destruction_n 3._o i_o say_v that_o the_o example_n of_o jehosaphat_n and_o hezechias_n be_v no_o command_a precept_n and_o have_v not_o the_o force_n of_o law_n and_o you_o know_v that_o vivitur_fw-la praeceptis_fw-la non_fw-la exemplis_fw-la man_n be_v to_o live_v by_o law_n and_o not_o by_o example_n whereof_o we_o have_v more_o bad_a than_o good_a but_o be_v they_o never_o so_o good_a and_o so_o godly_a yet_o be_v they_o no_o commander_n but_o councillor_n and_o no_o law_n to_o enjoin_v we_o but_o less_o n_n to_o direct_v we_o and_o that_o in_o the_o like_a case_n for_o where_o the_o proportion_n and_o the_o equality_n betwixt_o the_o example_n and_o the_o follow_v of_o it_o fail_v there_o we_o must_v likewise_o fail_v to_o follow_v it_o and_o we_o find_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o disproportion_n and_o inequality_n betwixt_o the_o grove_n and_o high_a place_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o our_o cathedral_n and_o church_n that_o be_v the_o papist_n because_o their_o grove_n and_o high_a place_n be_v very_o dangerous_a to_o be_v leave_v for_o the_o just_a fear_n of_o a_o secret_a access_n and_o come_n unto_o they_o by_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n that_o be_v always_o so_o apt_a and_o so_o ready_a to_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o our_o cathedrall_n and_o church_n be_v free_v from_o this_o fear_n when_o as_o they_o be_v thorough_o cleanse_v and_o purge_v from_o all_o the_o former_a superstition_n by_o the_o pure_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o no_o idolatrous_a papist_n come_v unto_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o but_o only_o those_o that_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v of_o the_o pure_a religion_n and_o therefore_o learned_a zanchius_n say_v 12._o hieron_n zanch._n de_fw-fr operibus_fw-la redemptionis_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 12._o that_o ubique_fw-la locorum_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la ferè_fw-la regnis_fw-la &_o provinciis_fw-la quae_fw-la amplexae_fw-la sunt_fw-la evangelium_fw-la templa_fw-la ipsa_fw-la in_o quibus_fw-la idolatria_fw-la admissa_fw-la fuit_fw-la tot_fw-la annos_fw-la retenta_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o every_o place_n and_o in_o all_o kingdom_n and_o province_n wellnigh_o which_o have_v embrace_v the_o gospel_n the_o church_n themselves_o where_o idolatry_n have_v be_v commit_v have_v be_v retain_v so_o many_o year_n together_o and_o why_o shall_v they_o not_o be_v still_o use_v for_o what_o evil_a have_v the_o church_n commit_v that_o they_o which_o be_v dedicate_v to_o such_o a_o holy_a use_n as_o be_v the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v now_o so_o severe_o handle_v as_o to_o be_v either_o quite_o demolish_v or_o divert_v and_o turn_v to_o any_o other_o purpose_n for_o the_o senseless_a creature_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v sinful_a and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v censure_v and_o therefore_o the_o leprous_a man_n house_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v purge_v then_o to_o be_v pull_v down_o and_o where_o the_o malady_n be_v uncurable_a there_o as_o the_o poet_n say_v immedicabile_fw-la vulnus_fw-la ense_n recidendum_fw-la ne_fw-la pars_fw-la syncera_fw-la trahatur_fw-la the_o part_n only_o infect_v and_o putrify_a be_v to_o be_v cut_v off_o and_o not_o to_o cast_v away_o the_o whole_a and_o so_o the_o wise_a divine_n throw_v down_o the_o altar_n of_o those_o church_n where_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n be_v most_o use_v but_o they_o think_v good_a to_o keep_v the_o church_n still_o to_o their_o former_a use_n and_o so_o when_o the_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o man_n offer_v incense_v unto_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o rebellion_n of_o kora_n god_n himself_o bid_v eleazar_n the_o high_a priest_n not_o to_o throw_v away_o those_o brazen_a censer_n which_o those_o man_n offer_v but_o to_o employ_v they_o for_o his_o service_n 16.38_o numb_a 16.38_o and_o to_o make_v of_o they_o broad_a plate_n for_o a_o cover_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o when_o jericho_n be_v take_v by_o the_o israelite_n joshua_n cause_v the_o gold_n silver_n brass_n and_o iron_n that_o be_v execrable_a good_n not_o to_o be_v throw_v away_o but_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o put_v into_o the_o treasury_n of_o god_n house_n and_o it_o be_v very_o well_o worth_a your_o observation_n 6.26_o josh_n 6.26_o to_o consider_v what_o the_o lord_n himself_o command_v gedeon_n to_o do_v namely_o to_o take_v his_o father_n young_a bullock_n even_o the_o second_o bullock_n of_o seven_o year_n old_a that_o be_v feed_v to_o be_v offer_v unto_o baal_n and_o throw_v down_o the_o altar_n of_o baal_n and_o cut_v down_o the_o grove_n that_o be_v by_o it_o 6.26_o judg._n 6.26_o and_o build_v a_o altar_n unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n upon_o the_o top_n of_o this_o rock_n and_o take_v the_o second_o bullock_n and_o offer_v a_o burn_a sacrifice_n with_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o grove_n which_o thou_o shall_v cut_v down_o and_o according_a to_o these_o precedent_n the_o law_n provide_v honor._n cod._n l._n 1._o tit_v 8._o valent._n mart._n tit_n 12._o leg_n 11._o honor._n that_o the_o house_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n do_v meet_v and_o broach_v their_o damnable_a divinity_n shall_v be_v adjudge_v to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o orthodoxal_a church_n as_o be_v also_o the_o house_n and_o habitation_n of_o the_o caelicoles_n that_o be_v heretic_n so_o call_v and_o in_o saint_n augustine_n time_n the_o church_n that_o the_o donatist_n possess_v be_v not_o destroy_v but_o they_o be_v take_v from_o they_o as_o we_o take_v we_o from_o the_o roman-priest_n and_o be_v give_v to_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n and_o therefore_o why_o shall_v not_o we_o use_v those_o church_n that_o be_v religious_o dedicate_v and_o holy_o consecrate_a for_o god_n service_n and_o can_v not_o themselves_o commit_v any_o offence_n nor_o be_v so_o profane_v as_o the_o accurse_a thing_n of_o jericho_n or_o the_o bullock_n and_o grove_n of_o baal_n or_o the_o church_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o donatist_n to_o be_v the_o temple_n and_o sanctify_a house_n wherein_o our_o people_n shall_v meet_v to_o hear_v god_n word_n to_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o receive_v his_o holy_a sacrament_n but_o i_o remember_v plutarch_n 57_o plutarch_n in_o vit_fw-fr publicolae_fw-la pag._n 113._o &_o tit._n livius_n l._n 2._o pag._n 57_o and_o titus_n livius_n tell_v we_o how_o that_o the_o roman_n after_o they_o have_v expel_v tarqvinius_n superous_a when_o his_o son_n sextus_n tarqvinius_n have_v most_o shameful_o ravish_v lucretia_n they_o all_o take_v a_o solemn_a oath_n they_o will_v never_o suffer_v any_o king_n to_o reign_v over_o they_o and_o because_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o free_v they_o from_o the_o fear_n of_o a_o regal_a government_n the_o consul_n b●utu●_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o people_n make●_n a_o solemn_a oration_n to_o his_o fellow_n consul_n tarqvinius_n colla●nius_n to_o give_v over_o his_o consulship_n and_o to_o depart_v the_o city_n to_o free_v the_o people_n from_o that_o fear_n because_o that_o although_o he_o be_v a_o very_a honest_a man_n and_o be_v a_o principal_a actor_n in_o expelling_a 〈◊〉_d quin●us_fw-la superbus_n and_o they_o can_v lay_v nothing_o to_o his_o charge_n that_o ever_o he_o do_v or_o say_v against_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n or_o for_o the_o government_n of_o king_n yet_o seeing_z his_o name_n be_v tarqvinius_n the_o freedom_n of_o the_o city_n can_v not_o be_v full_o secure_v nor_o the_o man_n free_a from_o the_o fear_n of_o tyranny_n so_o long_o as_o a_o person_n of_o that_o name_n how_o just_a and_o innocent_a so_o ever_o he_o be_v continue_v within_o the_o city_n so_o i_o believe_v it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o evil_n that_o these_o man_n can_v or_o can_v ever_o espy_v in_o our_o church_n they_o cry_v so_o much_o and_o yell_v like_o
wolf_n against_o they_o but_o only_o for_o the_o name_n that_o they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v by_o roman_a catholic_n and_o that_o popish_a priest_n have_v serve_v in_o they_o but_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o we_o who_o build_v they_o or_o who_o serve_v in_o they_o so_o we_o serve_v god_n aright_o in_o they_o this_o be_v all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o look_v unto_o for_o so_o we_o find_v that_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n frequent_v the_o temple_n not_o that_o which_o solomon_n build_v nor_o that_o which_o zorobabel_n erect_v 14._o ●●●●ph_n antiq._n l._n 15._o c._n 14._o but_o that_o which_o herod_n that_o seek_v our_o saviour_n life_n build_v d_o and_o beautify_v and_o that_o which_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n have_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lay_v defile_v with_o their_o false-gl●sses_a and_o the_o other_o jew_n have_v make_v it_o a_o den_n of_o thief_n 21.13_o matth_n 21.13_o and_o though_o castor_n and_o pollux_n be_v become_v idol_n and_o worship_v as_o god_n among_o the_o heathen_n yet_o saint_n paul_n refuse_v not_o to_o sail_v in_o a_o ship_n who_o badge_n be_v castor_n and_o pollux_n and_o saint_n luke_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o set_v down_o those_o ●itles_n of_o the_o paganish_a idol_n 33._o ●ocrat_fw-mi eccles_n hist_o l._n 2._o c._n 33._o and_o therefore_o as_o eunomius_n be_v most_o foolish_a for_o refuse_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n of_o th●_n martyr_n lest_o he_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o worship_v the_o dead_a and_o e●stathius_n be_v most_o fantastical_a for_o detest_a all_o public_a church_n and_o lead_v his_o scholar_n to_o private_a conventicle_n in_o ordinary_a house_n for_o fear_v they_o shall_v be_v defile_v with_o the_o memorial_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o church_n so_o these_o our_o brethren_n of_o the_o separation_n be_v most_o simple_a for_o disclaim_v our_o church_n prayer_n and_o ministry_n and_o like_o the_o elder_a brother_n in_o the_o parable_n hear_v afar_o off_o the_o melody_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o understanding_n of_o our_o entertainment_n into_o our_o father_n house_n be_v very_o angry_a and_o will_v not_o come_v into_o god_n house_n for_o fear_n of_o infection_n but_o will_v convene_v in_o private_a house_n and_o run_v abroad_o into_o the_o field_n like_o esan_n to_o hunt_v there_o for_o the_o blessing_n which_o with_o ja●●b_n they_o may_v get_v near_a home_n in_o their_o father_n house_n and_o when_o we_o will_v according_a to_o our_o injunction_n seek_v to_o compel_v they_o to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o highway_n and_o hedge_n to_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o king_n son_n they_o will_v waste_v their_o wealth_n leave_v their_o mansion_n and_o like_o heliodorus_n the_o fool_n of_o athens_n sail_n beyond_o the_o strait_n of_o gibraltar_n and_o make_v shipwreck_n before_o the_o tempest_n rather_o than_o they_o will_v come_v into_o god_n house_n whereby_o they_o may_v fit_v still_o under_o their_o own_o v●nes_n enjoy_v the_o food_n of_o their_o father_n house_n the_o safeguard_n of_o their_o wealth_n and_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o soul_n which_o they_o do_v hazard_n by_o their_o own_o simplicity_n in_o be_v like_o the_o jew_n zealous_a but_o not_o according_a to_o knowledge_n chap._n xiii_o that_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o pious_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o they_o be_v god_n substitute_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o church_n to_o see_v that_o when_o such_o cathedrall_n and_o church_n be_v build_v and_o beautify_v as_o be_v fit_v for_o his_o service_n there_o be_v able_a religious_a and_o honest_a painful_a and_o faithful_a bishop_n place_v in_o those_o cathedral_n that_o shall_v likewise_o see_v able_a and_o religious_a minister_n place_v in_o all_o parochial_a church_n and_o all_o negligent_a unworthy_a and_o dissolute_a man_n bishop_n or_o priest_n reprove_v correct_v and_o amend_v or_o remove_v and_o exclude_v from_o their_o place_n and_o dignity_n if_o they_o amend_v not_o it_o be_v well_o and_o true_o observe_v as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n show_v that_o although_o the_o wise_a god_n have_v most_o merciful_o decree_v and_o according_o exhibit_v and_o give_v a_o saviour_n in_o himself_o altogether_o sufficient_a for_o the_o say_n of_o all_o mankind_n and_o all_o the_o lose_a son_n of_o adam_n and_o he_o have_v most_o wise_o and_o gracious_o take_v a_o course_n on_o his_o own_o part_n and_o in_o itself_o also_o full_o sufficient_a and_o appoint_v a_o course_n and_o order_n on_o man_n part_n that_o be_v due_o observe_v may_v make_v the_o same_o sufficient_o effectual_a unto_o all_o yet_o it_o so_o fall_v out_o destruction_n man_n destruction_n that_o very_o many_o man_n attain_v not_o to_o that_o end_n for_o which_o god_n do_v send_v his_o son_n to_o save_v they_o but_o be_v seize_v on_o by_o god_n justice_n and_o cast_v to_o eternal_a condemnation_n and_o that_o chief_o by_o man_n own_o default_n and_o partly_o in_o some_o respect_n through_o the_o default_n of_o his_o ruler_n and_o teacher_n yet_o so_o that_o he_o die_v and_o suffer_v only_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n 1._o through_o their_o own_o default_n when_o king_n and_o prince_n fault_n 1._o by_o their_o own_o fault_n who_o god_n have_v appoint_v and_o set_v to_o be_v their_o governor_n and_o ruler_n do_v by_o their_o under-magistrate_n and_o their_o just_a law_n prohibit_v they_o from_o all_o evil_a and_o wickedness_n and_o require_v they_o to_o embrace_v all_o virtue_n and_o godliness_n of_o life_n and_o to_o this_o end_n do_v appoint_v their_o substitute_n the_o bish_n ps_n and_o other_o teacher_n to_o guide_v they_o and_o to_o instruct_v they_o to_o let_v they_o know_v what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o be_v evil_a and_o so_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v and_o what_o not_o and_o these_o do_v faithful_o discharge_v these_o office_n as_o moses_n and_o aaron_n david_n and_o nathan_n and_o many_o other_o godly_a king_n and_o bishop_n do_v yet_o man_n will_v not_o obey_v their_o governor_n but_o rebel_n like_o corah_n dathan_n and_o abiram_n and_o as_o of_o late_a we_o have_v do_v 11.21_o jer._n 11.21_o they_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o voice_n of_o their_o teacher_n but_o say_v to_o the_o prophet_n prophesy_v not_o unto_o we_o and_o say_v to_o god_n himself_o depart_v from_o we_o 21.14_o job_n 21.14_o for_o we_o desire_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o law_n or_o they_o rely_v upon_o their_o own_o wisdom_n and_o account_v the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n foolishness_n 1.18_o 1_o cor._n 1.18_o or_o they_o follow_v the_o ill_a example_n of_o their_o father_n and_o do_v worse_o than_o their_o father_n 16.12_o jer._n 18.12_o etc._n etc._n 16.12_o or_o they_o do_v addict_v themselves_o to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o vanity_n of_o this_o world_n that_o do_v choke_v the_o seed_n of_o god_n word_n in_o they_o or_o when_o cross_n affliction_n and_o persecution_n come_v they_o be_v offend_v ●2_n matth._n 13._o ●2_n and_o start_v aside_o like_o a_o break_a bow_n then_o god_n see_v these_o course_n that_o they_o take_v contrary_a to_o the_o course_n that_o he_o have_v set_v down_o for_o their_o salvation_n he_o complain_v of_o they_o that_o his_o people_n will_v not_o hear_v his_o voice_n and_o israel_n will_v not_o obey_v he_o therefore_o he_o give_v they_o up_o unto_o their_o own_o heart_n lust_n 15._o ps_n 81.12_o 15._o and_o let_v they_o follow_v their_o own_o imagination_n governor_n 2._o man_n destruction_n much_o further_v by_o the_o default_n of_o their_o governor_n 2._o though_o all_o wicked_a man_n do_v thus_o chief_o work_v their_o own_o destruction_n yet_o many_o time_n their_o fall_n and_o ruin_n be_v much_o further_v by_o the_o default_n and_o apostasy_n of_o their_o prime-governour_n or_o at_o least_o through_o their_o neglect_n and_o the_o neglect_n of_o their_o subordinate_a magistrate_n and_o minister_n the_o bishop_n and_o preacher_n that_o be_v under_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n the_o governor_n of_o god_n church_n for_o god_n have_v set_v these_o ruler_n the_o supreme_a and_o subordinate_a to_o be_v the_o watchman_n and_o shepherd_n over_o his_o people_n to_o govern_v they_o and_o teach_v they_o how_o to_o live_v just_o and_o holy_o that_o they_o may_v attain_v to_o eternal_a life_n if_o by_o their_o default_n their_o mislead_v of_o they_o out_o of_o the_o way_n or_o neglect_v to_o show_v they_o the_o right_a way_n the_o people_n do_v miscarry_v the_o man_n so_o misguided_a and_o not_o instruct_v 33.8_o ezech._n 33.8_o shall_v die_v in_o their_o iniquity_n and_o god_n will_v require_v their_o blood_n at_o the_o shepherd_n and_o watchman_n band_n and_o yet_o cain_n a_o principal_a ruler_n of_o and_o over_o his_o posterity_n mislead_v and_o not_o teach_v they_o the_o right_a worship_n of_o god_n perish_v himself_o and_o
most_o general_o find_v that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o precedent_a bishop_n that_o have_v most_o wrong_v the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n bishop_n why_o the_o son_n of_o bishop_n be_v most_o spiteful_a unto_o the_o succeed_v bishop_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n most_o contrariant_n and_o opposite_n i_o will_v not_o say_v spiteful_a or_o envious_a to_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n because_o as_o i_o conceive_v their_o heart_n tell_v they_o what_o injury_n their_o father_n do_v they_o for_o their_o sake_n and_o themselves_o continue_v therein_o and_o therefore_o do_v conceive_v that_o the_o present_a bishop_n can_v think_v well_o nor_o love_v they_o that_o have_v so_o much_o wrong_v both_o they_o and_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o requite_v they_o according_a to_o their_o own_o thought_n with_o hate_n for_o hate_n they_o be_v of_o all_o other_o most_o spiteful_a cross_v and_o prejudicial_a unto_o they_o or_o else_o because_o they_o do_v imagine_v that_o the_o present_a and_o succeed_a bishop_n will_v be_v as_o wicked_a and_o as_o unjust_a as_o their_o father_n and_o their_o predecessor_n be_v and_o therefore_o deserve_v neither_o love_n nor_o favour_n from_o they_o church_n as_o alexander_n the_o coppersmith_n withstand_v s._n paul_n so_o the_o last_o bishop_n son_n withstand_v i_o to_o recover_v the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o hear_v many_o parliament_n man_n say_v that_o in_o the_o long_a antichristian_a parliament_n none_o be_v more_o violent_a against_o the_o bishop_n than_o the_o son_n and_o posterity_n of_o precedent_n bishop_n i_o find_v it_o so_o and_o i_o have_v espy_v another_o fault_n in_o some_o of_o our_o former_a bishop_n not_o a_o little_a prejudicial_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o be_v not_o only_o to_o give_v order_n to_o unworthy_a man_n but_o also_o to_o bestow_v living_n upon_o unworthy_a priest_n for_o as_o the_o old_a say_n be_v rector_n eris_fw-la praesto_fw-la de_fw-la sanguine_fw-la praesulis_fw-la esto_fw-la or_o as_o another_o say_v quatuor_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la portis_fw-la intratur_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la prima_fw-la patet_fw-la magnis_fw-la nummatis_fw-la altera_fw-la tertia_fw-la charis_fw-la sed_fw-la paucis_fw-la solet_fw-la quarta_fw-la patere_fw-la dei_fw-la so_o it_o be_v their_o practice_n to_o bestow_v live_n rectory_n prebend_n and_o other_o preferment_n not_o on_o they_o that_o best_o deserve_v they_o but_o either_o upon_o their_o child_n friend_n or_o servant_n or_o on_o they_o that_o can_v as_o the_o story_n go_v tell_v they_o due_a and_o so_o to_o the_o lessor_n and_o to_o the_o lessee_n of_o the_o church-land_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o church_n the_o like_a curse_n and_o anathema_n be_v due_a who_o be_v melchisedecks_n father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v st._n peter_n lesson_n aurum_fw-la &_o argentum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la in_o the_o affirmative_a way_n which_o be_v a_o fault_n worthy_a to_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o judge_n for_o as_o it_o be_v most_o true_o say_v q●icunque_fw-la sacra_fw-la vel_fw-la sacros_fw-la ordines_fw-la vendunt_fw-la aut_fw-la emunt_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la esse_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la whosoever_o do_v buy_v or_o sell_v holy_a order_n or_o any_o holy_a thing_n can_v be_v priest_n vnde_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la anathema_n danti_fw-la anathema_n accipienti_fw-la whence_o it_o be_v write_v let_v god_n curse_v be_v to_o the_o buyer_n and_o the_o curse_n of_o god_n to_o the_o receiver_n because_o this_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o holy_a thing_n and_o thing_n dedicate_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v the_o simoniacal_a heresy_n or_o heresy_n of_o simon_n m●gus_n q●omodo_fw-la ergo_fw-la si_fw-la anathematizati_fw-la sunt_fw-la &_o sancti_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la sanctificare_fw-la alios_fw-la possunt_fw-la quicunque_fw-la habetur_fw-la 1._o q._n 1._o can._n quicunque_fw-la how_o then_o if_o they_o be_v accurse_v and_o no_o saint_n can_v they_o make_v other_o saint_n or_o sanctify_v they_o et_fw-la cum_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la sint_fw-la quomodo_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la tradere_fw-la vel_fw-la accipere_fw-la possunt_fw-la et_fw-la qui_fw-la maledictus_fw-la est_fw-la benedicere_fw-la quomodo_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o see_v such_o man_n be_v not_o in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o can_v they_o deliver_v or_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o how_o can_v he_o that_o be_v accurse_v himself_o bless_v any_o other_o and_o therefore_o see_v the_o word_n of_o god_n require_v the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v so_o holy_a in_o their_o life_n and_o so_o qualify_v with_o knowledge_n and_o learning_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n as_o i_o show_v to_o you_o before_o and_o be_v typify_v by_o those_o golden_a bell_n and_o the_o pomegranate_n that_o be_v to_o be_v set_v in_o the_o skirt_n of_o aaron_n robe_n round_o about_o the_o bell_n signify_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o people_n and_o the_o pomegranate_n the_o sweet_a smell_a fruit_n of_o a_o good_a and_o godly_a life_n it_o behoove_v the_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o who_o god_n have_v give_v the_o prime_a sovereignty_n and_o command_v they_o to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o honour_n and_o the_o service_n of_o his_o church_n to_o see_v so_o far_o as_o they_o can_v that_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n which_o they_o place_n over_o god_n people_n be_v so_o qualify_v as_o god_n require_v and_o to_o enjoin_v these_o their_o prime_a substitute_n to_o look_v that_o those_o priest_n and_o deacon_n which_o they_o make_v and_o place_n in_o the_o church_n be_v likewise_o such_o as_o i_o have_v foreshowed_n for_o this_o god_n require_v at_o their_o hand_n and_o this_o david_n jehosaphat_n ezechias_n josias_n and_o all_o the_o good_a and_o godly_a king_n of_o israel_n and_o juda_n and_o all_o the_o pious_a christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n do_v and_o i_o do_v know_v how_o zealous_o and_o careful_o our_o late_a most_o gracious_a king_n charles_n the_o i._o be_v to_o place_v able_a religious_a and_o godly_a bishop_n over_o god_n church_n which_o be_v a_o special_a duty_n of_o every_o king_n and_o because_o also_o the_o prelate_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o all_o or_o may_v not_o all_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n be_v all_o such_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v but_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v such_o as_o i_o have_v show_v to_o you_o before_o either_o like_o simon_n magus_n sell_v what_o they_o shall_v free_o give_v or_o like_o demas_n embrace_v this_o present_a world_n or_o like_o baalam_n love_v the_o wage_n of_o unrighteousness_n or_o perhaps_o do_v worse_o than_o those_o apostatise_v like_o julian_n and_o start_v aside_o like_o ecebolius_n or_o devise_v wicked_a heresy_n like_o arius_n or_o rent_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n like_o donatus_n then_o as_o solomon_n depose_v abiathar_n and_o divers_a of_o the_o good_a emperor_n depose_v wicked_a pope_n and_o the_o godly_a king_n have_v pull_v down_o ungodly_a bishop_n as_o our_o late_a queen_n elizabeth_n do_v degrade_v bishop_n bonner_n and_o divers_a other_o popish_a prelate_n so_o shall_v all_o good_a and_o godly_a king_n reprove_v and_o correct_v and_o if_o they_o amend_v not_o expel_v and_o remove_v all_o scandalous_a and_o ungodly_a bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n do_v the_o like_a to_o all_o debauch_a and_o dissolute_a minister_n that_o so_o the_o old_a and_o sour_a leaven_n may_v be_v purge_v out_o of_o god_n church_n and_o the_o bvilder_n of_o god_n tabernacle_n be_v like_o bezaliel_n and_o aholiab_n such_o as_o can_v and_o will_v do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n careful_o and_o religious_o chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o maintenance_n due_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n church_n how_o large_a and_o liberal_a it_o ought_v to_o be_v three_o when_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n churchman_n 3._o to_o provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o the_o churchman_n which_o be_v the_o supreme_a magistrate_n and_o as_o tertullian_n say_v homines_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundi_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minores_fw-la be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v next_o to_o god_n in_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o therefore_o aught_o to_o have_v the_o prime_n and_o chief_a care_n of_o god_n honour_n and_o his_o worship_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v as_o i_o have_v former_o show_v with_o king_n david_n and_o solomon_n scapulam_fw-la colimus_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o so_o lo_o de●_n minorem_fw-la tertul._n ad_fw-la scapulam_fw-la provide_v that_o temple_n and_o church_n be_v erect_v and_o beautify_v as_o fit_a house_n of_o god_n for_o his_o people_n and_o servant_n to_o convene_v and_o meet_v in_o they_o to_o worship_n god_n and_o have_v likewise_o take_v care_n in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o see_v that_o good_a man_n and_o godly_a bishop_n be_v appoint_v over_o those_o church_n as_o their_o substitute_n to_o rule_v govern_n and_o teach_v the_o people_n of_o god_n how_o to_o live_v and_o
condition_n their_o preacher_n be_v and_o of_o what_o worth_n of_o no_o faith_n of_o no_o learning_n that_o have_v already_o forfeit_v their_o estate_n if_o they_o have_v any_o and_o their_o life_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o will_v any_o man_n that_o be_v wise_a hazard_v his_o estate_n his_o life_n and_o his_o soul_n to_o follow_v the_o persuasion_n of_o these_o man_n my_o life_n be_v as_o dear_a to_o i_o as_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n his_o head_n be_v to_o he_o and_o my_o soul_n dear_a and_o i_o dare_v engage_v they_o both_o that_o if_o all_o the_o doctor_n in_o both_o university_n and_o all_o the_o divine_n within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v gather_v together_o to_o give_v their_o judgement_n of_o this_o war_n there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v one_o of_o ten_o it_o may_v be_v as_o i_o believe_v not_o one_o of_o twenty_o that_o dare_v upon_o his_o conscience_n say_v this_o war_n be_v lawful_a upon_o the_o parliament_n side_n for_o though_o these_o locust_n that_o be_v the_o german_a king_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n for_o subject_n to_o resist_v their_o king_n scottish_a and_o the_o english_a puritan_n agree_v with_o the_o roman_a jesuit_n ever_o since_o the_o reformation_n harp_v upon_o this_o string_n and_o retain_v this_o serpentine_a poison_n within_o their_o bosom_n still_o spit_v it_o forth_o against_o all_o state_n as_o you_o may_v see_v by_o their_o book_n yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o plain_o this_o doctrine_n of_o subject_n take_v up_o arm_n against_o their_o lawful_a king_n be_v point_n blank_a and_o direct_o against_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o against_o the_o tenet_n of_o all_o true_a protestant_n and_o therefore_o andrea_n rivetus_n professor_n at_o leyden_n write_v against_o a_o jesuit_n 30._o paraeus_n in_o rom._n 13._o boucher_n l._n 2._o c_o 2._o keckerm_n sy_v pol._n c._n 32._o jun._n brut._n q._n 2._o p._n 56._o bellar._n the_o laic_a c._n 6._o suar._n de_fw-fr fid_fw-we cathol_n c._n 3._o lichfield_n l._n 4._o 19_o sect_n 19_o field_n l._n 5._o c._n 30._o that_o cast_v this_o aspersion_n upon_o the_o protestant_n that_o they_o jump_v with_o they_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o war_a against_o and_o depose_v king_n say_v that_o no_o protestant_a do_v maintain_v that_o damnable_a doctrine_n and_o that_o rashness_n of_o knox_n and_o buchanan_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v praefervido_fw-la scotorum_fw-la ingenio_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la audendum_fw-la prompto_fw-la jewel_n and_o bilson_n and_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n and_o lichfield_n say_v no_o orthodox_n father_n do_v by_o word_n or_o writing_n teach_v any_o resistance_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o doctor_n field_n say_v that_o all_o the_o worthy_a father_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o owe_v all_o duty_n unto_o their_o king_n though_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o infidel_n and_o the_o homily_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n allow_v by_o authority_n do_v plain_o and_o peremptory_o condemn_v all_o subject_n war_a against_o their_o king_n for_o rebel_n and_o traitor_n that_o do_v resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o procure_v unto_o themselves_o damnation_n and_o true_o i_o believe_v most_o of_o their_o own_o conscience_n tell_v they_o so_o and_o they_o that_o think_v otherwise_o i_o will_v have_v they_o to_o consider_v that_o if_o they_o be_v at_o a_o banquet_n where_o twenty_o shall_v aver_v such_o a_o dish_n to_o be_v full_a of_o poison_n for_o every_o one_o that_o will_v warrant_v it_o good_a will_v thou_o venture_v to_o eat_v it_o and_o hazard_v thy_o life_n in_o such_o a_o case_n o_o then_o consider_v what_o it_o be_v to_o hazard_v thy_o soul_n upon_o the_o like_a term_n so_o you_o see_v the_o justness_n of_o the_o war_n on_o the_o parliament_n side_n but._n 1._o on_o the_o king_n side_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o his_o cause_n be_v most_o just_a for_o his_o own_o defence_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n that_o be_v establish_v by_o our_o law_n and_o for_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o just_a liberty_n and_o property_n of_o all_o his_o loyal_a subject_n this_o he_o testify_v in_o all_o his_o declaration_n and_o this_o we_o know_v in_o our_o own_o conscience_n to_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o 2._o as_o his_o majesty_n profess_v so_o we_o believe_v he_o that_o he_o never_o intend_v otherwise_o by_o this_o war_n but_o to_o protect_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n and_o to_o maintain_v his_o own_o just_a and_o unquestionable_a right_n which_o these_o rebel_n will_v most_o unjust_o wrest_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o under_o the_o show_n of_o humble_a petitioner_n to_o become_v at_o last_o proud_a commander_n for_o as_o one_o say_v they_o who_o no_o denial_n can_v withstand_v seem_v but_o to_o ask_v while_o they_o indeed_o command_v 3._o for_o the_o person_n that_o war_n with_o he_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o nobility_n religious_a 3_o his_o assistant_n learned_a honest_a and_o religious_a all_o the_o best_a gentry_n that_o hazard_n their_o life_n not_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n for_o the_o king_n revenue_n be_v so_o unjust_o detain_v from_o he_o they_o be_v fain_o to_o supply_v his_o necessity_n and_o to_o bear_v their_o own_o charge_n and_o the_o poor_a common_a soldier_n be_v nothing_o want_v to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n neither_o need_v they_o to_o fear_v any_o thing_n because_o be_v 4_o his_o authority_n sacred_a and_o unquestionable_a what_o the_o pretend_a parliament_n be_v 4._o the_o king_n have_v a_o just_a right_n to_o give_v they_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o do_v execution_n upon_o these_o rebel_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v unto_o you_o before_o and_o therefore_o the_o result_n of_o all_o be_v that_o the_o parliament_n side_n under_o the_o pretence_n of_o religion_n fight_v if_o not_o for_o the_o crown_n yet_o certain_o for_o the_o full_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n who_o shall_v have_v the_o order_n of_o the_o militia_n that_o be_v who_o shall_v have_v the_o government_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o who_o shall_v be_v the_o king_n they_o or_o king_n charles_n and_o which_o be_v the_o very_a question_n that_o they_o will_v now_o decide_v by_o the_o sword_n in_o take_v away_o our_o good_n be_v thief_n and_o robber_n in_o kill_v their_o brethren_n be_v bloody_a murderer_n and_o in_o resist_v their_o king_n be_v rebellious_a traitor_n that_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v purchase_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n when_o as_o the_o prophet_n esay_n speak_v of_o the_o like_a rebel_n be_v hardly_o bestead_v and_o hungry_a 22._o esay_n 8.21_o 22._o as_o i_o believe_v thousand_o of_o they_o be_v in_o london_n and_o other_o rebellious_a city_n they_o shall_v fret_v themselves_o and_o curse_v their_o king_n and_o their_o god_n and_o look_v upward_o as_o i_o fear_v many_o of_o they_o do_v curse_v the_o king_n with_o their_o tongue_n and_o god_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o shall_v look_v unto_o the_o earth_n 8.12_o matth._n 8.12_o and_o behold_v trouble_v and_o darkness_n dimness_n and_o anguish_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v drive_v to_o darkness_n even_o to_o utter_v darkness_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v weep_v and_o gnash_n of_o tooth_n if_o by_o a_o true_a repentance_n they_o do_v not_o betimes_o rend_v their_o heart_n and_o forsake_v their_o fearful_a sin_n and_o the_o king_n side_n in_o this_o war_n do_v no_o further_a than_o the_o king_n give_v commission_n do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o god_n command_v and_o therefore_o live_v they_o shall_v be_v account_v loyal_a subject_n worthy_a of_o honour_n and_o die_v they_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o be_v everlasting_o reward_v chap._n xiii_o show_n how_o the_o first_o government_n of_o king_n be_v arbitrary_a the_o place_n of_o moses_n deu._n 17._o and_o of_o samuel_n 1_o sam._n 8._o discuss_v whether_o ahab_n offend_v in_o desire_v naboth_n vineyard_n and_o wherein_o why_o absolute_a power_n be_v grant_v unto_o king_n and_o how_o the_o diversity_n of_o government_n come_v up_o arbitrary_a 2_o part_n of_o the_o regal_a government_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n master_n selden_n in_o his_o title_n of_o honour_n p._n 15._o that_o the_o first_o government_n of_o king_n be_v arbitrary_a 2._o have_v thus_o show_v you_o potestatem_fw-la ducendi_fw-la the_o king_n right_a and_o power_n of_o make_v war_n it_o rest_v that_o i_o shall_v speak_v de_fw-fr potestate_fw-la judicandi_fw-la of_o his_o power_n and_o right_n of_o judge_v and_o govern_v his_o people_n in_o the_o time_n of_o peace_n touch_v which_o we_o find_v none_o deny_v his_o right_n but_o all_o the_o difference_n be_v about_o the_o manner_n where_o 1._o i_o find_v master_n selden_n reject_v
they_o almost_o as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v desire_v so_o our_o hope_n and_o humble_a request_n be_v that_o you_o will_v not_o suffer_v these_o man_n to_o take_v from_o we_o so_o much_o as_o they_o desire_v for_o the_o prevent_n of_o which_o desire_n of_o they_o if_o it_o may_v be_v i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o arm_v myself_o with_o a_o resolution_n neither_o to_o fear_v nor_o flatter_v any_o man_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o they_o that_o fear_v the_o smoke_n may_v fall_v into_o the_o fire_n et_fw-la qui_fw-la timet_fw-la pruinam_fw-la opprimetur_fw-la à_fw-la nive_v that_o be_v as_o s._n gregory_n moralize_v it_o he_o that_o fear_v the_o frost_n of_o man_n anger_n which_o he_o may_v tread_v under_o his_o foot_n may_v be_v overwhelm_v with_o the_o hail_n and_o snow_n of_o god_n wrath_n which_o shall_v fall_v upon_o his_o head_n so_o that_o he_o can_v not_o escape_v it_o and_o i_o have_v study_v not_o to_o prepare_v sweet_a and_o savoury_a meat_n unto_o my_o reader_n but_o salubria_fw-la medicamenta_fw-la those_o medicine_n that_o shall_v be_v most_o wholesome_a for_o their_o soul_n and_o because_o the_o ear_n of_o all_o church-robber_n be_v like_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o deaf_a adder_n that_o will_v not_o be_v charm_v and_o the_o wall_n of_o this_o sin_n of_o sacrilege_n be_v like_o the_o wall_n of_o jericho_n that_o can_v be_v tumble_v down_o without_o the_o shrill_a sound_n of_o trumpet_n and_o ram_n horn_n i_o have_v sharpen_v my_o pen_n and_o in_o the_o bitterness_n of_o my_o soul_n for_o the_o havoc_n that_o i_o see_v make_v of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o god_n church_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o mild_a voice_n of_o el●_n to_o his_o son_n but_o with_o the_o rough_a speech_n of_o joseph_n unto_o his_o brethren_n that_o have_v sleep_v so_o many_o year_n in_o their_o sin_n as_o our_o people_n have_v do_v in_o their_o sacrilege_n and_o yet_o think_v it_o to_o be_v no_o sin_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o this_o my_o discourse_n will_v prove_v as_o the_o water_n of_o gall_n and_o as_o bitter_a as_o wormwood_n unto_o those_o man_n stomach_n that_o be_v so_o greedy_a as_o we_o see_v man_n be_v to_o get_v away_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n and_o myself_o to_o be_v malign_v and_o envy_v to_o the_o full_a but_o i_o assure_v they_o non_fw-la flocci_fw-la facere_fw-la i_o weigh_v it_o not_o a_o rush_n for_o i_o have_v harden_v my_o face_n like_o a_o adamant_n and_o as_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o ezechiel_n whether_o they_o will_v hear_v or_o whether_o they_o will_v forbear_v i_o will_v speak_v what_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v truth_n and_o nothing_o but_o what_o my_o conscience_n tell_v i_o be_v truth_n and_o if_o in_o any_o thing_n i_o shall_v mistake_v it_o be_v not_o amor_fw-la erroris_fw-la the_o love_n of_o error_n or_o the_o hatred_n of_o any_o of_o those_o sacrilegious_a person_n that_o rob_v the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v error_n amoris_fw-la the_o error_n of_o my_o love_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o unfeigned_a desire_n to_o promote_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o poor_a and_o honest_a irish_a of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o so_o if_o i_o have_v offend_v i_o shall_v humble_o crave_v your_o majesty_n pardon_n and_o most_o willing_o submit_v myself_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o my_o morning_n evening_n and_o noon-day_n prayer_n for_o your_o majesty_n be_v long-life_n and_o much_o happiness_n i_o rest_v your_o majesty_n be_v most_o humble_a devote_a and_o most_o faithful_a loyal_a subject_n gryffith_n ossory_n to_o all_o the_o commissioned_n officer_n of_o the_o king_n army_n in_o the_o year_n 1649._o noble_a and_o worthy_a gentleman_n whose_o true_a faithfulness_n to_o your_o king_n and_o great_a valour_n in_o the_o war_n undertake_v to_o defend_v the_o best_a king_n on_o earth_n church_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n i_o blame_v not_o all_o the_o soldier_n and_o commissioned_n officer_n when_o i_o find_v very_o many_o of_o they_o very_o honest_a &_o very_o religious_a man_n and_o some_o of_o they_o have_v tell_v i_o they_o will_v not_o meddle_v and_o wish_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o soldier_n will_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o land_n or_o house_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o preserve_v his_o undubitable_a right_n unsnatch_v from_o he_o by_o wicked_a rebel_n do_v undoubted_o merit_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o wise_a and_o honest_a man_n no_o small_a reward_n far_o more_o than_o the_o reach_n of_o my_o understanding_n can_v express_v yet_o you_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o tell_v you_o that_o i_o shall_v be_v hearty_o sorry_a that_o any_o man_n can_v just_o say_v that_o your_o great_a desert_n be_v any_o way_n stain_v with_o the_o tincture_n of_o sacrilege_n which_o i_o assure_v myself_o you_o will_v never_o permit_v if_o you_o conceive_v any_o thing_n that_o you_o do_v to_o have_v the_o least_o affinity_n with_o that_o ugly_a bastard-brat_n therefore_o i_o have_v undertake_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o conscience_n and_o according_a to_o the_o best_a and_o uttermost_a of_o my_o knowledge_n without_o the_o least_o ill_o think_v of_o any_o of_o you_o all_o or_o the_o least_o covetous_a desire_n to_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o you_o that_o be_v inoffensive_o your_o due_n but_o to_o discharge_v the_o duty_n that_o i_o owe_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n to_o compose_v this_o subsequent_a treatise_n concern_v sacrilege_n and_o to_o show_v how_o horrible_a &_o how_o odious_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n how_o derogatory_n and_o prejudicial_a it_o be_v to_o the_o honour_n and_o service_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o how_o dangerous_a and_o how_o it_o damnifi_v those_o that_o commit_v it_o the_o same_o be_v a_o canker_n that_o will_v eat_v and_o consume_v all_o that_o they_o have_v before_o many_o generation_n pass_v away_o a_o sword_n that_o will_v cut_v down_o their_o posterity_n from_o off_o the_o earth_n and_o a_o sin_n that_o oblige_v they_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n without_o the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o accept_v their_o great_a and_o unfeigned_a repentance_n for_o the_o same_o and_o what_o you_o imagine_v i_o do_v herein_o against_o you_o i_o do_v assure_v you_o if_o you_o will_v believe_v i_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o get_v either_o land_n or_o house_n from_o you_o as_o to_o hinder_v you_o as_o i_o conceive_v so_o deep_o to_o wound_v your_o own_o self_n for_o better_a be_v a_o little_a that_o be_v due_o get_v without_o blame_n and_o bring_v a_o blessing_n with_o it_o than_o a_o great_a deal_n that_o be_v unjust_o obtain_v with_o a_o curse_n at_o the_o heel_n of_o it_o but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o you_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o you_o just_o may_v do_v by_o the_o law_n of_o our_o land_n and_o what_o other_o do_v and_o have_v do_v before_o you_o and_o true_o i_o do_v think_v so_o too_o but_o i_o have_v full_o answer_v this_o allegation_n and_o as_o i_o suppose_v whatsoever_o else_o can_v be_v say_v in_o this_o treatise_n and_o i_o ask_v of_o you_o whether_o you_o conceive_v that_o humane_a law_n and_o act_n of_o parliament_n make_v by_o powerful_a command_n and_o either_o through_o fear_n or_o error_n can_v make_v that_o which_o be_v against_o the_o will_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n or_o free_a the_o sinner_n from_o god_n wrath_n or_o do_v you_o think_v that_o i_o stand_v against_o so_o many_o well-deserving_a gentleman_n of_o such_o mean_n and_o friend_n and_o power_n as_o you_o be_v only_o for_o covetousness_n to_o gain_v the_o rent_n of_o a_o few_o house_n and_o no_o long_o than_o the_o remainder_n of_o a_o poor_a old_a man_n life_n sure_o not_o any_o one_o that_o have_v but_o the_o least_o inch_n of_o worldly_a wisdom_n will_v do_v so_o for_o beside_o my_o pain_n and_o labour_n i_o have_v spend_v already_o and_o shall_v spend_v yet_o before_o the_o church_n shall_v lose_v they_o perhaps_o ten_o time_n more_o than_o my_o spanlong_a life_n shall_v gain_v by_o they_o and_o what_o of_o that_o i_o have_v do_v my_o best_a when_o i_o have_v lose_v they_o et_fw-la liberavi_fw-la animam_fw-la meam_fw-la and_o shall_v leave_v to_o god_n causam_fw-la svam_fw-la let_v he_o arise_v and_o defend_v his_o own_o cause_n but_o let_v man_n take_v heed_n how_o they_o strive_v against_o god_n or_o seek_v to_o obstruct_v his_o service_n and_o cause_v the_o diminution_n of_o his_o worship_n which_o i_o hope_v your_o piety_n will_v never_o suffer_v any_o one_o of_o you_o to_o do_v and_o i_o shall_v pray_v for_o you_o all_o and_o assure_o remain_v your_o affectionate_a friend_n and_o servant_n gryffith_n ossory_n the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n chap._n i._n a_o introduction_n show_v
the_o occasion_n of_o this_o treatise_n and_o what_o the_o author_n do_v therein_o page_n 1._o chap._n ii_o of_o sacrilege_n what_o it_o be_v how_o manifold_a it_o be_v and_o how_o it_o have_v be_v always_o punish_v and_o never_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o divine_a vengeance_n p._n 4._o chap._n iii_o the_o divers_a sort_n and_o kind_n of_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o first_o of_o those_o that_o do_v it_o under_o colour_n of_o law_n and_o upon_o the_o pretence_n of_o reformation_n whereby_o they_o suppose_v their_o sacrilege_n to_o be_v no_o sacrilege_n at_o all_o p._n 15._o chap._n iu._n of_o two_o sort_n of_o sacrilegious_a person_n that_o rob_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o colour_n or_o pretence_n of_o law_n but_o indeed_o contrary_a to_o all_o law_n p._n 21._o chap._n v._o the_o word_n of_o king_n david_n in_o the_o 2_o sam._n 7.1_o 2._o and_o their_o division_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v and_o how_o or_o in_o what_o sense_n sit_v and_o stand_v be_v common_o take_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o two_o person_n that_o be_v here_o confer_v together_o p._n 27._o chap._n vi_o what_o the_o rest_n and_o peaceable_a time_n of_o king_n david_n wrought_v the_o prince_n authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o how_o they_o shall_v be_v zealous_a to_o see_v that_o god_n shall_v be_v just_o and_o religious_o serve_v p._n 31._o chap._n vii_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n and_o other_o jesuit_n against_o the_o former_a doctrine_n of_o the_o prince_n his_o authority_n over_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a answer_v and_o the_o foresay_a truth_n sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o clear_a testimony_n of_o the_o father_n and_o council_n and_o divers_a of_o the_o pope_n and_o papist_n themselves_o p._n 37._o chap._n viii_o that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n though_o not_o to_o execute_v the_o function_n and_o to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n yet_o to_o have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n and_o to_o cause_v both_o the_o priest_n and_o bishop_n and_o all_o other_o to_o discharge_v the_o duty_n of_o god_n service_n and_o how_o the_o good_a and_o godly_a emperor_n and_o king_n have_v former_o do_v the_o same_o from_o time_n to_o time_n p._n 41._o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o chief_a part_n and_o duty_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n which_o they_o be_v to_o discharge_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o god_n service_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o cathedral-churche_n and_o chapel_n for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o meet_v in_o for_o the_o worship_n and_o service_n of_o god_n p._n 46._o chap._n x._o the_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o objection_n that_o the_o fanatick-sectary_n do_v make_v 1._o against_o the_o necessity_n and_o 2_o against_o the_o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n of_o our_o material_a church_n which_o in_o derision_n and_o contemptuous_o they_o call_v steeple-house_n p._n 53._o chap._n xi_o the_o answer_n to_o another_o objection_n that_o our_o fanatick-sectary_n do_v make_v against_o the_o beauty_n and_o glorious_a adorn_v of_o our_o church_n which_o we_o say_v shall_v be_v do_v with_o such_o decent_a ornament_n and_o implement_n as_o be_v befit_v the_o house_n and_o service_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v honour_v god_n with_o our_o good_n and_o how_o liberal_a and_o bountiful_a both_o the_o father_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n p._n 58._o chap._n xii_o the_o answer_n to_o another_o objection_n that_o our_o brainsick_a sectary_n do_v make_v for_o the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o our_o cathedral_n and_o church_n as_o be_v so_o foul_o stain_v and_o profane_v with_o popish_a superstition_n and_o therefore_o be_v no_o better_o than_o the_o temple_n of_o baal_n they_o shall_v rather_o be_v quite_o demolish_v than_o any_o way_n adorn_v and_o beautify_v p._n 63._o chap._n xiii_o that_o it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o pious_a king_n and_o prince_n as_o they_o be_v god_n substitute_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o church_n to_o see_v that_o when_o such_o cathedral_n and_o church_n be_v build_v and_o beautify_v as_o be_v fit_v for_o his_o service_n there_o be_v able_a religious_a and_o honest_a painful_a and_o faithful_a bishop_n place_v in_o those_o cathedral_n that_o shall_v likewise_o see_v able_a and_o religious_a minister_n place_v in_o all_o parochial_a church_n and_o all_o negligent_a unworthy_a and_o dissolute_a man_n bishop_n or_o priest_n reprove_v correct_v and_o amend_v or_o remove_v and_o exclude_v from_o their_o place_n and_o dignity_n if_o they_o amend_v not_o p._n 67._o chap._n fourteen_o of_o the_o maintenance_n due_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n church_n how_o large_a and_o liberal_a it_o ought_v to_o be_v p._n 75._o chap._n xv._o that_o the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n unto_o the_o church_n be_v not_o a_o case_n of_o custom_n but_o of_o conscience_n whenas_o the_o ten_o by_o a_o divine_a right_n be_v the_o teacher_n tribute_n and_o the_o very_a first_o part_n of_o the_o wage_n that_o god_n appoint_v to_o be_v pay_v unto_o his_o workman_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v as_o heinous_a a_o sin_n and_o as_o foul_a a_o offence_n to_o defraud_v the_o minister_n of_o this_o due_a as_o it_o be_v to_o detain_v the_o meat_n or_o money_n of_o the_o labouring-man_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o four_o crying-sin_n p._n 82._o chap._n xvi_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o choice_a and_o chief_a objection_n that_o the_o school_n of_o anabaptist_n have_v make_v and_o do_v urge_v against_o the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n p._n 91._o chap._n xvii_o what_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o council_n collect_v of_o most_o learned_a and_o pious_a bishop_n have_v leave_v write_v concern_v tithe_n and_o of_o the_o threefold_a cause_n that_o detain_v they_o from_o the_o church_n p._n 98._o chap._n xviii_o of_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o stipend_n wage_n and_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v the_o oblation_n donation_n or_o free-wil-offering_a of_o the_o people_n for_o to_o uphold_v and_o continue_v the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o obtain_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o themselves_o and_o upon_o their_o labour_n which_o donation_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v impropriate_v and_o alienate_v from_o the_o church_n by_o any_o mean_n p._n 105._o chap._n xix_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o have_v all_o the_o impropriation_n restore_v to_o their_o former_a institution_n to_o hinder_v the_o take_v away_o and_o the_o alienation_n of_o the_o land_n house_n and_o other_o the_o religious_a donation_n of_o our_o ancestor_n from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o suppress_v and_o root_v out_o all_o the_o unjust_a and_o covetous_a subtle_a custom_n and_o fraud_n that_o be_v so_o general_o use_v and_o be_v so_o derogatory_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n from_o among_o the_o people_n and_o especial_o from_o this_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n where_o most_o corruption_n be_v use_v and_o most_o need_n of_o instruction_n unto_o the_o people_n p._n 114._o chap._n xx._n the_o author_n supplication_n to_o jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o will_v arise_v and_o maintain_v his_o own_o cause_n which_o we_o his_o weak_a servant_n can_v do_v against_o so_o many_o rich_a powerful_a and_o many-friended_n adversary_n of_o his_o church_n p._n 117._o a_o declaration_n against_o sacrilege_n chap._n i._n the_o declaration_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o ossory_n exhibit_v to_o the_o high_a court_n of_o justice_n before_o jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a judge_n against_o the_o most_o horrible_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n and_o all_o sacrilegious_a person_n that_o detain_v the_o tithe_n rob_v the_o church_n and_o take_v the_o land_n and_o house_n of_o god_n into_o their_o own_o possession_n together_o with_o his_o most_o humble_a petition_n to_o the_o eternal_a and_o almighty_a god_n his_o most_o gracious_a redeemer_n and_o his_o most_o love_a master_n jesus_n christ_n that_o he_o will_v arise_v and_o maintain_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o smite_v all_o his_o enemy_n upon_o their_o cheekbone_n and_o put_v they_o to_o perpetual_a shame_n and_o root_v out_o their_o memorial_n from_o off_o the_o earth_n show_n that_o by_o your_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n the_o strenuous_a defender_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n and_o his_o most_o gracious_a master_n charles_n the_o i._o of_o ever_o bless_a memory_n he_o be_v call_v and_o appoint_v to_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o ossory_n and_o to_o enable_v he_o the_o better_a to_o discharge_v his_o
the_o church_n good_n for_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o this_o gain_n do_v ever_o bring_v a_o rod_n at_o its_o back_n when_o as_o zophar_n say_v god_n shall_v cause_v he_o to_o vomit_v up_o that_o which_o he_o have_v devour_v 20.15_o job_n 20.15_o and_o shall_v cast_v they_o out_o of_o his_o belly_n and_o render_v vengeance_n to_o he_o for_o the_o detriment_n and_o injury_n that_o he_o have_v do_v to_o his_o church_n and_o servant_n 5.27_o the_o punishment_n of_o sacrilege_n great_a than_o the_o punishment_n of_o idolatry_n exod_n 20._o 2_o reg._n 5.27_o and_o this_o vengeance_n saint_n augustine_n note_v to_o be_v more_o grievous_a than_o the_o punishment_n of_o idolatry_n for_o whereas_o god_n threaten_v to_o punish_v idolater_n but_o to_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n we_o find_v that_o the_o sacrilege_n of_o jeroboam_n in_o sell_v the_o priest_n office_n provoke_v god_n to_o root_v out_o his_o house_n and_o all_o his_o posterity_n from_o off_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o simony_n of_o gehezi_n be_v punish_v with_o such_o a_o leprosy_n as_o stick_v both_o upon_o himself_o and_o upon_o all_o his_o whole_a seed_n for_o ever_o man_n why_o sacrilege_n be_v so_o odious_a to_o god_n and_o so_o prejudicial_a and_o infestuous_a to_o man_n and_o no_o marvel_n that_o this_o sin_n of_o sacrilege_n shall_v be_v so_o odious_a unto_o god_n and_o so_o infestuous_a and_o pernicious_a unto_o man_n because_o that_o although_o other_o sin_n as_o idolatry_n murder_n adultery_n theft_n and_o the_o like_a may_v be_v be_v say_v to_o be_v but_o as_o it_o be_v private_a and_o particular_a sin_n that_o infect_v none_o or_o but_o few_o beside_o the_o doer_n of_o they_o yet_o this_o sin_n of_o sacrilege_n be_v a_o public_a and_o a_o far-spreading_a sin_n not_o only_o against_o some_o particular_a person_n but_o against_o a_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o against_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o religion_n when_o by_o defraud_v and_o take_v away_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o minister_n the_o whole_a ministry_n of_o god_n service_n be_v impair_v and_o suffer_v nay_o cause_v to_o be_v neglect_v and_o decay_v wickedness_n how_o sacrilege_n bring_v forth_o atheism_n idolatry_n and_o all_o wickedness_n whereby_o not_o only_a idolatry_n and_o false_a worship_n have_v a_o open_a gap_n and_o a_o broad_a way_n of_o entrance_n into_o god_n church_n but_o also_o atheism_n and_o no_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o all_o corruption_n and_o lewdness_n must_v be_v the_o chief_a fruit_n that_o can_v grow_v upon_o this_o accurse_a tree_n of_o sacrilege_n when_o either_o the_o soldier_n or_o any_o other_o of_o the_o lord_n or_o gentry_n take_v the_o land_n and_o house_n of_o god_n into_o their_o possession_n or_o the_o covetous_a patron_n do_v sell_v and_o make_v merchandise_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n people_n 2._o the_o sacrilege_n of_o the_o people_n 2._o as_o the_o irreligious_a patron_n do_v offend_v in_o sell_v the_o minister_n live_v that_o he_o shall_v free_o bestow_v upon_o he_o so_o the_o parishioner_n be_v as_o ready_a and_o as_o greedy_a to_o detain_v and_o keep_v back_o that_o right_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o priest_n by_o god_n law_n and_o the_o minister_n have_v also_o buy_v from_o his_o patron_n as_o the_o patron_n be_v to_o sell_v what_o he_o shall_v give_v and_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o think_v how_o witty_a they_o be_v to_o go_v to_o hell_n if_o god_n be_v not_o the_o more_o merciful_a unto_o they_o to_o hold_v they_o from_o it_o what_o shift_n and_o trick_n they_o have_v to_o hold_v back_o their_o hand_n from_o pay_v their_o tithe_n and_o how_o loath_a they_o be_v to_o set_v out_o their_o tithe_n and_o think_v all_o that_o lose_v that_o be_v lay_v out_o for_o the_o priest_n but_o alas_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o herein_o they_o deceive_v not_o we_o alone_o that_o be_v the_o priest_n but_o their_o own_o soul_n also_o that_o be_v more_o damnify_v by_o this_o their_o sacrilege_n than_o the_o priest_n can_v be_v by_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o tithe_n because_o that_o hereby_o they_o rob_v not_o man_n but_o god_n himself_o for_o that_o the_o priest_n 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o lord_n receiver_n and_o his_o rend_a gatherer_n gatherer_n the_o minister_n be_v god_n rend_v gatherer_n of_o that_o small_a acknowledgement_n which_o he_o require_v from_o we_o his_o tenant_n at_o will_n for_o all_o the_o great_a thing_n he_o give_v to_o we_o to_o be_v repay_v to_o he_o again_o as_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o duty_n and_o thankfulness_n and_o the_o stipend_n that_o he_o have_v allot_v to_o they_o that_o be_v to_o serve_v he_o at_o his_o altar_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o israelite_n give_v unto_o their_o levite_n as_o our_o people_n in_o many_o place_n do_v give_v unto_o their_o preacher_n the_o blind_a the_o lame_a and_o the_o maim_a the_o lean_a lamb_n and_o the_o leight_a sheave_v the_o lord_n complain_v 27.30_o mal._n 3.8_o 10._o leu._n 27.30_o that_o they_o rob_v and_o spoil_v he_o in_o tithe_n and_o offering_n because_o the_o lord_n say_v direct_o that_o all_o the_o tithe_n of_o the_o land_n be_v the_o l●rds_n and_o all_o that_o be_v holy_a unto_o the_o lord_n but_o see_v that_o this_o sacrilegious_a age_n have_v produce_v and_o bring_v forth_o tot_fw-la manus_fw-la auferendi_fw-la so_o many_o hand_n to_o take_v away_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o many_o tongue_n to_o speak_v against_o and_o adversary_n to_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o tithe_n and_o to_o take_v away_o the_o land_n house_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n i_o shall_v leave_v it_o to_o be_v more_o full_o handle_v towards_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o discourse_n and_o declaration_n against_o sacrilege_n chap._n v._n the_o word_n of_o king_n david_n in_o the_o 2_o sam._n 7.1_o 2._o and_o their_o division_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v and_o how_o or_o in_o what_o sense_n sit_v and_o stand_v be_v common_o take_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o two_o person_n that_o be_v here_o confer_v together_o if_o you_o look_v into_o the_o 2_o of_o sam._n 7.1_o 2._o verse_n you_o shall_v find_v it_o thus_o write_v afterward_o when_o the_o king_n sit_v in_o his_o house_n and_o the_o lord_n have_v give_v he_o rest_v round_o about_o from_o all_o his_o enemy_n the_o king_n say_v unto_o nathan_n the_o prophet_n behold_v now_o i_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n of_o cedar_n tree_n and_o the_o ark_n of_o god_n remaein_v in_o the_o curtain_n and_o so_o forth_o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o which_o word_n you_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o sum_n of_o this_o whole_a chapter_n be_v 3._o fold_n and_o contain_v these_o 3._o part_n 1._o david_n deliberation_n fold_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o chapter_n 3._o fold_n 2._o nathan_n replication_n 3._o david_n gratulation_n 1._o the_o deliberation_n be_v about_o a_o oratory_n and_o temple_n deliberation_n 1._o the_o deliberation_n or_o house_n to_o be_v erect_v and_o dedicate_v to_o god_n for_o his_o servant_n to_o meet_v in_o to_o worship_v he_o and_o this_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o two_o first_o verse_n here_o set_v down_o 2._o the_o replication_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v two_o fold_n 1._o affirmative_a and_o erroneous_a or_o mistake_v vers_fw-la 3._o replication_n 2._o the_o replication_n 2._o negative_a and_o right_a from_o the_o 3._o vers_fw-la to_o the_o 18._o 3._o the_o gratulation_n be_v in_o a_o humble_a acknowledgement_n gratulation_n 3._o the_o gratulation_n and_o a_o grateful_a remembrance_n of_o the_o forepast_a benefit_n of_o god_n with_o a_o earnest_n and_o hearty_a prayer_n put_v up_o to_o god_n for_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o favour_n unto_o he_o from_o the_o 18._o verse_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o i_o shall_v here_o treat_v of_o no_o more_o than_o of_o the_o deliberation_n or_o the_o prophet_n consideration_n what_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v touch_v which_o we_o be_v to_o observe_v these_o three_o thing_n deliberation_n the_o 3._o thing_n observable_a in_o the_o deliberation_n 1._o the_o time_n which_o have_v a_o twofold_a manifestation_n of_o it_o 1._o when_o he_o sit_v in_o his_o house_n 2._o when_o he_o be_v safe_a from_o his_o enemy_n 2._o the_o person_n deliberate_v and_o they_o be_v 2._o 1._o david_n the_o king_n 2._o nathan_n the_o prophet_n 3._o the_o matter_n deliberate_v and_o consider_v of_o betwixt_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o that_o be_v the_o meanness_n and_o baseness_n of_o the_o then_o house_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v be_v at_o the_o cost_n and_o charge_n to_o make_v it_o beautiful_a and_o to_o erect_v he_o a_o house_n befit_v the_o majesty_n and_o greatness_n of_o god_n and_o this_o his_o good_a intention_n he_o justifi_v and_o confirm_v the_o same_o to_o be_v both_o honest_a and_o good_a by_o the_o consequent_a of_o congruity_n
ponunt_fw-la in_o esse_fw-la and_o be_v no_o apodictical_a proof_n for_o any_o weighty_a matter_n especial_o the_o example_n of_o the_o o●d_a testament_n to_o confirm_v the_o do_n of_o the_o like_a thing_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n because_o that_o for_o we_o to_o be_v guide_v and_o direct_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o old_a law_n be_v the_o highway_n to_o lead_v we_o to_o infinite_a inconvenience_n therefore_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o because_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o juda_n do_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v foreshowed_n unto_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o service_n in_o the_o temple_n therefore_o our_o modern_a prince_n shall_v have_v the_o like_a authority_n to_o do_v the_o like_a thing_n unto_o the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n about_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o especial_o in_o the_o censure_v of_o they_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o be_v the_o prime_a governor_n of_o the_o same_o sol._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v 1._o that_o this_o be_v as_o the_o school_n say_v petitio_fw-la principii_fw-la and_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o we_o say_v that_o although_o for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n 4.12_o ephes_n 4.12_o for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_a or_o build_v up_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o church_n god_n have_v set_v in_o his_o church_n first_o apostle_n 12.28_o 1_o cor._n 12.28_o secondary_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n and_o so_o bishop_n and_o priest_n primary_o and_o principal_o to_o discharge_v the_o aforesaid_a office_n and_o duty_n yet_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o they_o be_v simple_o and_o absolute_o the_o prime_a governor_n and_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n 49.23_o in_o what_o sense_n the_o bishop_n &_o priest_n and_o in_o what_o sense_n king_n &_o prince_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o prime_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n esay_n 49.23_o in_o the_o other_o respect_n aforenamed_a may_v be_v just_o say_v to_o be_v the_o prime_n and_o supreme_a governor_n as_o well_o in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a for_o the_o prophet_n esay_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gospel_n say_v that_o king_n shall_v be_v she_o nurse_v father_n and_o queen_n her_o nurse_n mother_n and_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v yield_v that_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n be_v the_o prime_n and_o supreme_a governor_n of_o their_o child_n rather_o than_o their_o schoolmaster_n and_o teacher_n but_o though_o the_o progeny_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o our_o frantic_a sectary_n will_v fain_o thrust_v out_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o politic_a prince_n and_o make_v he_o just_a like_o polyphemus_n that_o have_v a_o body_n of_o vast_a dimension_n but_o of_o a_o single_a sight_n scarce_o able_a to_o see_v his_o way_n and_o to_o govern_v himself_o yet_o i_o shall_v by_o god_n assistance_n make_v it_o most_o apparent_a unto_o you_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n council_n and_o some_o popish_a author_n that_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v always_o a_o peremptory_a supreme_a power_n as_o well_o over_o the_o ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n as_o over_o the_o civil_a person_n and_o cause_n of_o the_o temporal_a state_n and_o commonwealth_n for_o 1._o s._n augustine_n write_v against_o parmenian_a the_o donatist_n that_o will_v parmon_n 1._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n aug._n p._n 1._o cont._n epistolam_fw-la parmon_n with_o our_o disciplinarian_o that_o be_v the_o very_a brood_n of_o those_o donatist_n unarm_v the_o king_n of_o his_o spiritual_a sword_n say_v a_o fort_n de_fw-fr religione_fw-la fas_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la dicat_fw-la imperator_fw-la vel_fw-la quos_fw-la miserit_fw-la imperator_fw-la cur_n ergo_fw-la ad_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la vestri_fw-la venerunt_fw-la legati_fw-la cur_n eum_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la causae_fw-la suae_fw-la judicem_fw-la be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o the_o emperor_n and_o so_o the_o prince_n or_o whosoever_o he_o shall_v send_v to_o treat_v and_o determine_v matter_n of_o religion_n if_o you_o think_v it_o be_v not_o why_o do_v your_o messenger_n than_o come_v unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o why_o do_v they_o make_v he_o thy_o judge_n of_o their_o cause_n whereby_o you_o see_v s._n augustine_n judge_v the_o emperor_n or_o any_o other_o supreme_a prince_n to_o have_v a_o lawful_a power_n to_o hear_v and_o to_o determine_v the_o point_n and_o matter_n controvert_v among_o the_o bishop_n and_o so_o to_o have_v a_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n as_o well_o as_o a_o temporal_a nicephorus_n also_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o emperor_n immanuel_n say_v imperat_fw-la nicephorus_n in_o praefatione_fw-la ad_fw-la immanuel_n imperat_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la dux_n professionis_fw-la fidei_fw-la nostrae_fw-la tu_fw-la restituisti_fw-la catholicam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o reformasti_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la à_fw-la mercatoribus_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la per_fw-la verbum_fw-la veritatis_fw-la thou_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o our_o profession_n and_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o thou_o have_v restore_v or_o reform_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o cleanse_v it_o from_o those_o merchant_n of_o the_o heavenly_a doctrine_n and_o from_o all_o the_o heretic_n by_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n and_o i_o think_v nothing_o can_v be_v say_v full_a and_o clear_a than_o this_o to_o justify_v the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o supreme_a magistrate_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a 7._o theodoretus_n l._n 1_o c._n 7._o yet_o theodoret_n and_o eusebius_n say_v as_o much_o of_o constantine_n the_o great_a 2._o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n council_n 2._o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n that_o be_v gather_v together_o to_o that_o place_n as_o the_o member_n of_o our_o parliament_n use_v to_o do_v be_v wont_a to_o lay_v down_o the_o canon_n they_o have_v agree_v upon_o in_o the_o council_n until_o the_o emperor_n shall_v come_v to_o confirm_v they_o with_o his_o royal_a assent_n and_o when_o the_o emperor_n come_v they_o say_v these_o decree_n seem_v good_a unto_o we_o if_o they_o seem_v so_o to_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o be_v after_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 831._o council_n chalcedon_n artic._n 1._o pag._n 831._o write_v thus_o submissive_o unto_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n we_o humble_o beseech_v your_o clemency_n that_o as_o you_o have_v honour_v the_o church_n with_o your_o letter_n by_o which_o you_o have_v call_v we_o together_o ita_fw-la finalem_fw-la conclusionem_fw-la decretorum_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la corrobores_fw-la sententia_fw-la tua_fw-la &_o sigillo_fw-la so_o you_o will_v be_v please_v to_o strengthen_v and_o confirm_v the_o last_o conclusion_n of_o our_o decree_n by_o your_o royal_a sentence_n and_o seal_n 3._o papist_n 3._o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n and_o papist_n as_o the_o father_n and_o council_n do_v thus_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n right_a in_o the_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n so_o many_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o papist_n themselves_o have_v confess_v the_o same_o truth_n and_o yield_v the_o same_o right_n unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o sovereign_a magistrate_n in_o the_o church_n and_o church-matter_n and_o over_o all_o the_o parson_n belong_v unto_o the_o church_n for_o platina_n that_o be_v library-keeper_n unto_o the_o pope_n papa_n i●aira_n in_fw-la severino_fw-it papa_n say_v that_o without_o the_o letter_n patent_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o confirm_v he_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o lawful_a pope_n and_o zabarel_n a_o great_a scholar_n say_v the_o pope_n may_v be_v accuse_v before_o the_o emperor_n of_o and_o for_o any_o notorious_a crime_n concilus_fw-la z●barella_n de_fw-fr schismate_fw-la &_o concilus_fw-la and_o public_a scandalous_a offence_n &_o imperator_fw-la potest_fw-la à_fw-la papa_n requirere_fw-la rationem_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o the_o emperor_n may_v inquire_v and_o call_v the_o pope_n to_o yield_v a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o so_o many_o of_o the_o better_a pope_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o confess_v the_o same_o for_o saint_n gregory_n who_o for_o his_o great_a learning_n and_o piety_n be_v surname_v the_o great_a write_v unto_o mauritius_n the_o emperor_n say_v imperatori_fw-la obedientiam_fw-la praebui_fw-la 16._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o c._n 16._o &_o pro_fw-la deo_fw-la quod_fw-la sensi_fw-la minimè_fw-la tacui_fw-la i_o have_v yield_v all_o obedience_n unto_o the_o emperor_n and_o what_o i_o conceive_v to_o be_v truth_n and_o for_o god_n i_o conceal_v it_o not_o mandastis_fw-la 2_o q._n 4._o mandastis_fw-la and_o before_o saint_n gregory_n time_n pope_n liberius_n be_v convent_v to_o appear_v before_o constantius_n deny_v not_o most_o ready_o to_o obey_v his_o summons_n so_o do_v pope_n sixtus_n upon_o the_o like_a complaint_n appear_v
athanasius_n say_v unto_o the_o emperor_n jovinian_a conveniens_fw-la est_fw-la pro_fw-la principe_fw-la studium_fw-la &_o amor_fw-la rerum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la it_o be_v meet_v and_o convenient_a for_o a_o good_a prince_n to_o study_v and_o love_v heavenly_a thing_n because_o that_o in_o so_o do_v his_o heart_n shall_v be_v always_o 3._o theodoret_n l._n 4._o c._n 3._o as_o solomon_n say_v in_o manu_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o saint_n cyrill_n tell_v the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n that_o ab_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la erga_fw-la deum_fw-la est_fw-la pielate_fw-la 21.1_o prov._n 21.1_o reipublicae_fw-la vestrae_fw-la status_fw-la pendet_fw-la the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o commonwealth_n do_v whole_o depend_v according_a to_o that_o piety_n and_o religion_n which_o they_o bear_v towards_o god_n 3._o cardanus_n de_fw-fr sapientia_fw-la lib._n 3._o because_o as_o cardan_n true_o say_v summum_fw-la praesidium_fw-la regni_fw-la est_fw-la justitia_fw-la ob_fw-la apertos_fw-la tumultus_fw-la &_o religio_fw-la ob_fw-la occultos_fw-la justice_n be_v the_o best_a defence_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o the_o suppressor_n of_o open_a tumult_n because_o righteousness_n exalt_v a_o nation_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o only_a protector_n and_o safe_o against_o all_o secret_a and_o privy_a machination_n o●tav_n minut._n fael_n in_o o●tav_n because_o as_o minutius_n foelix_n say_v what_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n do_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o justice_n to_o suppress_v the_o nefarious_a doer_n and_o actor_n of_o wickedness_n religion_n root_v out_o and_o suppress_v the_o very_a thought_n of_o evil_a rebel_n the_o want_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n the_o only_a thing_n that_o make_v rebel_n which_o a_o godly_a and_o a_o religious_a man_n fear_v as_o much_o and_o more_o than_o a_o wicked_a and_o profane_a man_n do_v dread_v the_o punishment_n of_o his_o offence_n and_o so_o religion_n piety_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n keep_v the_o very_a heart_n and_o soul_n of_o the_o subject_n from_o swell_a against_o their_o sovereign_n and_o from_o the_o least_o evil_a thought_n of_o rebellion_n and_o it_o be_v the_o want_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n whatsoever_o man_n pretend_v that_o make_v rebel_n and_o traitor_n in_o every_o place_n because_o the_o true_a religion_n tell_v we_o plain_o 13.1_o rom._n 13.1_o that_o every_o soul_n that_o be_v every_o man_n unfeigned_o from_o his_o heart_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o ●●gher_a power_n and_o the_o true_a religion_n teach_v we_o as_o tertull_n scapul_n tertul._n ad_fw-la scapul_n say_v colere_fw-la imperatorem_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la to_o acknowledge_v and_o to_o serve_v the_o emperor_n and_o so_o our_o king_n and_o our_o prince_n as_o the_o next_o person_n to_o god_n and_o inferior_a to_o none_o but_o to_o god_n when_o as_o he_o be_v omnibus_fw-la major_n &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minor_fw-la above_o all_o man_n and_o below_o none_o but_o only_o god_n religion_n how_o requisite_a it_o be_v for_o king_n to_o have_v a_o care_n to_o preserve_v religion_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o requisite_a that_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n shall_v have_v care_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o with_o the_o prophet_n david_n to_o build_v temple_n and_o church_n for_o he_o that_o have_v give_v their_o crown_n and_o throne_n unto_o they_o and_o to_o provide_v maintenance_n for_o those_o servant_n of_o god_n that_o serve_v at_o his_o temple_n as_o they_o do_v for_o those_o that_o serve_v themselves_o and_o so_o both_o to_o be_v religious_a themselves_o and_o to_o see_v that_o their_o subject_n so_o far_o as_o it_o lie_v in_o they_o shall_v be_v so_o likewise_o and_o this_o their_o own_o piety_n and_o goodness_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n will_v make_v they_o famous_a among_o all_o posterity_n and_o their_o name_n to_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n when_o as_o saint_n ambrose_n say_v 32._o ambrose_n epist_n 32._o nihil_fw-la honorificentius_fw-la quàm_fw-la ut_fw-la imperator_fw-la filius_fw-la dei_fw-la dicatur_fw-la nothing_o can_v be_v more_o honourable_a then_o that_o the_o emperor_n or_o king_n shall_v be_v name_v and_o call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n kingdom_n the_o fruit_n and_o benefit_n of_o maintain_v true_a religion_n in_o a_o kingdom_n which_o be_v a_o more_o glorious_a eulogy_n than_o homer_n can_v give_v to_o the_o best_a hero_n of_o all_o greece_n or_o that_o alexander_n julius_n caesar_n or_o the_o like_a can_v achieve_v by_o all_o their_o military_a exploit_n or_o the_o best_a domestic_a action_n that_o they_o have_v do_v and_o their_o make_a provision_n for_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o promoter_n of_o god_n service_n the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n which_o make_v their_o subject_n both_o loyal_a and_o obedient_a unto_o they_o and_o also_o religious_a towards_o god_n will_v preserve_v the_o peace_n and_o procure_v the_o happiness_n of_o their_o kingdom_n religion_n how_o many_o former_a king_n be_v very_o zealous_a to_o uphold_v religion_n and_o according_a as_o god_n have_v give_v this_o authority_n and_o lay_v this_o charge_n upon_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o his_o religion_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n so_o we_o find_v very_o very_a many_o both_o in_o former_a time_n and_o also_o of_o latter_a year_n and_o so_o both_o of_o gentile_n jew_n and_o christian_n that_o be_v exceed_o zealous_a for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o uphold_v of_o they_o that_o serve_v at_o his_o altar_n king_n 1._o gentile_a king_n as_o 1._o the_o gentile_a king_n as_o pharaoh_n king_n of_o egypt_n that_o in_o the_o extremity_n of_o that_o dearth_n which_o swallow_v the_o whole_a land_n he_o make_v provision_n for_o god_n priest_n priest_n the_o great_a bounty_n of_o king_n croesus_n to_o the_o god_n apollo_n and_o to_o his_o priest_n so_o that_o they_o neither_o want_v mean_n nor_o be_v drive_v to_o sell_v their_o land_n and_o so_o croesus_n king_n of_o lydia_n be_v so_o wonderful_a zealous_a of_o the_o honour_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o god_n of_o delphos_n and_o so_o bountiful_a to_o apollo_n priest_n that_o herodotus_n say_v that_o he_o make_v oblation_n of_o three_o thousand_o choice_a cattle_n such_o as_o may_v lawful_o be_v offer_v and_o cause_v a_o great_a stack_n of_o wood_n to_o be_v make_v wherein_o he_o burn_v bedstead_n of_o silver_n and_o gold_n and_o golden_a maysor_n with_o purple_a raiment_n and_o coat_n of_o exceed_a value_n and_o he_o lay_v the_o like_a charge_n upon_o the_o lydian_n that_o every_o man_n shall_v consecrate_v those_o jewel_n which_o he_o possess_v most_o costly_a and_o precious_a from_o which_o their_o sacrifice_n when_o as_o the_o stream_n of_o liquid_a and_o melt_a gold_n distrain_v in_o great_a abundance_n he_o cause_v thereof_o to_o be_v frame_v half_a flate_n or_o shard_n the_o long_a sort_n as_o he_o entitle_v they_o of_o six_o handful_n the_o short_a of_o three_o and_o a_o hand_n breadth_n in_o thickness_n amount_v to_o the_o number_n of_o a_o hundred_o and_o seventeen_o whereof_o four_o be_v of_o fine_a gold_n weigh_v two_o talent_n and_o a_o half_a and_o the_o rest_n of_o white_a gold_n that_o weigh_v two_o talent_n likewise_o he_o give_v also_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o lion_n in_o try_a and_o purge_v gold_n and_o two_o book_n very_o fair_a and_o stately_a to_o see_v to_o the_o one_o frame_v of_o gold_n weigh_v eight_o talent_n and_o a_o half_a with_o the_o additional_a of_o twenty_o four_o pound_n and_o the_o other_o of_o silver_n and_o he_o present_v likewise_o four_o silver_n tunn_v two_o drink_a cup_n the_o one_o of_o gold_n and_o the_o other_o of_o silver_n and_o silver_n ring_n with_o the_o shape_n and_o form_n of_o a_o woman_n three_o cubit_n high_a and_o withal_o he_o offer_v the_o chain_n girdle_n and_o wastband_n of_o the_o queen_n his_o wife_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n of_o amphiaraus_n he_o give_v a_o shield_n and_o a_o spear_n of_o solid_a gold_n and_o a_o quiver_n of_o the_o same_o metal_n all_o which_o say_v my_o author_n he_o offer_v in_o hope_n to_o purchase_v thereby_o unto_o himself_o the_o gracious_a favour_n and_o goodwill_n of_o that_o god_n and_o clio_o herodotus_n l._n 1_o clio_o if_o he_o be_v so_o magnificent_a and_o bountiful_a to_o the_o priest_n and_o temple_n of_o that_o god_n which_o be_v no_o god_n how_o royal_a think_v you_o will_v he_o have_v be_v if_o he_o have_v know_v the_o true_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n so_o cyrus_n and_o darius_n have_v of_o persia_n and_o of_o babylon_n make_v such_o royal_a decree_n for_o the_o re-edify_n of_o the_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n 8.9_o ezra_n 1.7_o etc._n etc._n 6.5_o etc._n etc._n 8.9_o and_o the_o worship_v of_o the_o god_n of_o daniel_n and_o his_o three_o
not_o many_o noble_a be_v call_v which_o be_v indeed_o a_o good_a way_n to_o suppress_v the_o danger_n of_o malignity_n that_o look_v not_o so_o much_o after_o poor_a estate_n and_o a_o good_a way_n to_o increase_v their_o number_n and_o propagate_v their_o design_n with_o more_o safety_n and_o as_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o church_n begin_v to_o take_v root_n and_o to_o grow_v strong_a and_o the_o wealthy_a noble_a and_o wise_a man_n begin_v to_o be_v in_o love_n with_o the_o christian_a religion_n so_o than_o they_o love_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o build_v church_n answerable_a for_o their_o beauty_n church_n how_o zealous_o the_o fi_fw-la st_o christian_n be_v affect_v &_o how_o bountiful_o they_o contribute_v towards_o the_o build_n of_o their_o church_n to_o the_o dignity_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o for_o their_o greatness_n to_o the_o number_n of_o their_o professor_n and_o the_o devotion_n of_o these_o christian_n be_v so_o large_a and_o do_v so_o liberal_o contribute_v towards_o the_o erect_n of_o their_o church_n as_o the_o israelite_n in_o the_o day_n of_o bezaliel_n do_v cheerful_o present_v their_o gift_n and_o free-will-offering_n towards_o the_o set_n up_o of_o the_o tabernacle_n no_o man_n be_v backward_o and_o no_o man_n a_o niggard_n in_o this_o work_n which_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v so_o profitable_a and_o so_o necessary_a for_o they_o to_o do_v and_o that_o in_o two_o special_a respect_n 1._o the_o good_a that_o be_v effect_v 2._o the_o evil_n that_o be_v prevent_v by_o the_o public_a meeting_n of_o the_o people_n in_o these_o church_n church_n the_o double_a benefit_n that_o we_o reap_v by_o our_o come_n to_o the_o public_a meeting_n in_o the_o church_n 1._o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o congregation_n public_o in_o a_o lawful_a place_n and_o a_o consecrate_a church_n assure_v they_o they_o offend_v not_o the_o law_n either_o of_o god_n or_o man_n and_o so_o secure_v they_o from_o all_o blame_n and_o prevent_v the_o occasion_n to_o traduce_v and_o to_o suspect_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o holy_a duty_n that_o we_o perform_v when_o as_o veritas_fw-la non_fw-la quaerit_fw-la angulos_fw-la truth_n and_o the_o performance_n of_o just_a thing_n and_o holy_a action_n need_v not_o run_v and_o hide_v themselves_o in_o private_a hide_a benefit_n 1._o benefit_n and_o unlawful_a place_n but_o may_v show_v themselves_o and_o appear_v so_o public_o as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o any_o the_o least_o unjust_a imputation_n benefit_n 2._o benefit_n 2._o the_o meeting_n in_o a_o public_a consecrate_a church_n and_o not_o in_o a_o private_a conventicle_n escape_v those_o dangerous_a plot_n and_o machination_n that_o be_v very_o often_o invent_v and_o contrive_v in_o those_o conventicle_n that_o be_v veil_v for_o that_o purpose_n under_o the_o mantle_n and_o pretence_n of_o religion_n and_o it_o free_v the_o comer_n unto_o the_o church_n from_o those_o seditious_a doctrine_n and_o damnable_a divinity_n which_o the_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n do_v scatter_v and_o broach_v in_o those_o unlawful_a conventicle_n which_o be_v the_o fit_a place_n for_o they_o to_o effect_v their_o wicked_a purpose_n and_o must_v needs_o be_v sinful_a and_o offend_v both_o god_n and_o man_n because_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n whenas_o the_o come_n unto_o the_o church_n quit_v my_o conscience_n from_o all_o fear_n of_o offend_v because_o that_o herein_o i_o do_v obey_v and_o do_v agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n both_o of_o god_n and_o man_n and_o who_o then_o that_o have_v any_o dram_n of_o wit_n will_v not_o avoid_v private_a and_o forbid_a meeting_n and_o go_v to_o serve_v god_n unto_o the_o public_a church_n which_o be_v the_o house_n of_o god_n erect_v and_o dedicate_v for_o his_o service_n chap._n x._o the_o answer_n to_o the_o two_o objection_n that_o the_o fanatick-sectary_n do_v make_v 1._o against_o the_o necessity_n and_o 2_o against_o the_o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n of_o our_o material_a church_n which_o in_o derision_n and_o contemptuous_o they_o call_v steeple-house_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o and_o all_o that_o we_o can_v say_v for_o the_o church_n of_o god_n i_o find_v four_o sort_n of_o objection_n church_n 4_o sort_n of_o objection_n against_o our_o material_a church_n that_o be_v make_v by_o our_o fanatic_n and_o skenimastice_n against_o our_o material_a church_n as_o 1._o against_o the_o necessity_n 2._o against_o the_o sanctity_n 3._o against_o the_o beauty_n &_o glory_n 4._o against_o the_o impurity_n &_o impiety_n of_o they_o 1._o they_o do_v object_n church_n 1._o objection_n against_o the_o necessity_n that_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o church_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o any_o material_a house_n or_o church_n of_o god_n for_o his_o servant_n to_o meet_v in_o to_o serve_v god_n because_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n discourse_v with_o christ_n about_o the_o place_n where_o god_n will_v be_v worship_v whether_o in_o that_o mountain_n where_o the_o father_n worship_v or_o in_o jerusalem_n which_o as_o the_o jew_n say_v be_v the_o place_n where_o man_n ought_v to_o worship_v our_o saviour_n tell_v she_o plain_o they_o worship_v they_o know_v not_o what_o for_o the_o hour_n come_v when_o you_o shall_v neither_o in_o this_o mountain_n nor_o yet_o in_o jerusalem_n worship_v the_o father_n but_o the_o true_a worshipper_n shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n because_o god_n be_v a_o spirit_n 23._o john_n 4.20_o 23._o and_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o must_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o such_o worshipper_n the_o father_n seek_v and_o such_o he_o love_v and_o therefore_o so_o we_o have_v clean_a heart_n and_o pure_a conscience_n and_o worship_n god_n with_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n faithful_o to_o pray_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o praise_v his_o name_n it_o be_v no_o matter_n for_o the_o place_n where_o we_o do_v it_o in_o a_o church_n or_o in_o a_o barn_n because_o god_n look_v rather_o to_o the_o inward_a heart_n than_o to_o the_o outward_a place_n where_o we_o stand_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v maledicta_fw-la glossa_fw-la quae_fw-la corrumpit_fw-la textum_fw-la sol._n and_o our_o saviour_n word_n give_v they_o no_o colour_n to_o extort_v such_o consequence_n and_o to_o draw_v such_o conclusion_n from_o they_o for_o the_o word_n be_v plain_a enough_o that_o although_o former_o before_o moses_n his_o time_n jacob_n have_v a_o well_o near_o sichar_n and_o he_o with_o the_o other_o father_n worship_v god_n in_o that_o mountain_n and_o afterward_o god_n require_v they_o to_o worship_v he_o in_o the_o place_n that_o he_o shall_v choose_v to_o put_v his_o name_n there_o which_o after_o the_o time_n of_o david_n and_o the_o build_n of_o his_o temple_n by_o solomon_n be_v to_o be_v jerusalem_n and_o no_o where_o else_o to_o perform_v the_o command_v public_a service_n of_o god_n under_o the_o punishment_n of_o cut_v off_o that_o soul_n from_o his_o people_n that_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o yet_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o be_v that_o be_v coming_z or_o beginning_n to_o come_v that_o the_o partition-wall_n betwixt_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n shall_v be_v break_v down_o and_o the_o bound_n and_o border_n of_o god_n church_n and_o the_o true_a worshipper_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v enlarge_v and_o they_o may_v lawful_o without_o offence_n worship_n god_n not_o only_o in_o jury_n where_o god_n be_v only_o former_o know_v aright_o but_o also_o in_o all_o the_o nation_n and_o in_o any_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n so_o they_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v but_o here_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n intimate_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o or_o need_v not_o to_o meet_v to_o serve_v god_n in_o the_o public_a church_n but_o that_o whensoever_o and_o wheresoever_o in_o any_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n they_o shall_v gather_v themselves_o together_o in_o the_o public_a church_n to_o worship_n god_n they_o shall_v worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n otherwise_o their_o worship_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n and_o will_v avail_v they_o nothing_o though_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o public_o in_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n obj._n 2_o 2._o we_o have_v another_o sort_n of_o sectary_n that_o yield_v it_o requisite_a and_o convenient_a for_o the_o saint_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n to_o meet_v and_o gather_v themselves_o together_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o great_a benefit_n that_o may_v accrue_v and_o be_v obtain_v in_o a_o congregation_n rather_o than_o by_o any_o single_a person_n but_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o their_o meeting_n in_o a_o material_a church_n or_o a_o steeplehouse_n as_o they_o call_v it_o rather_o than_o in_o a_o house_n or_o a_o chamber_n or_o a_o
barn_n or_o any_o other_o place_n where_o they_o shall_v appoint_v to_o meet_v because_o god_n have_v make_v all_o place_n and_o there_o be_v no_o real_a sanctity_n in_o any_o one_o place_n more_o than_o in_o any_o other_o but_o the_o sanctity_n or_o holiness_n must_v be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o man_n and_o not_o in_o the_o place_n which_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o any_o sanctity_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v rather_o our_o superstition_n than_o god_n injunction_n to_o require_v and_o command_v man_n to_o come_v to_o such_o material_a church_n as_o to_o the_o more_o sanctify_a place_n rather_o than_o to_o such_o private_a house_n where_o these_o saint_n do_v public_o meet_v to_o serve_v god_n sol._n to_o make_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o this_o their_o objection_n you_o must_v understand_v that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d holy_a be_v derive_v from_o the_o privative_a particle_n α_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v the_o earth_n as_o if_o to_o be_v holy_a be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o be_v pure_a and_o clean_a and_o separate_v from_o all_o earthly_a touch_n and_o it_o be_v take_v two_o way_n way_n holiness_n take_v two_o way_n 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d simple_o 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o some_o respect_n and_o way_n 1_o 1._o way_n god_n only_o be_v holy_a and_o the_o author_n of_o all_o holiness_n and_o as_o the_o bless_a virgin_n say_v holy_a be_v his_o name_n and_o therefore_o those_o seraphim_n which_o esaias_n see_v 6.3_o esay_n 6.3_o and_o those_o wondrous_a creature_n which_o s._n john_n see_v do_v cry_v 4.8_o apoc._n 4.8_o holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n of_o host_n three_o time_n together_o which_o we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o other_o attribute_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n himself_o in_o that_o golden_a plate_n that_o be_v to_o be_v on_o aaron_n forehead_n cause_v these_o word_n to_o be_v engrave_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d holiness_n be_v of_o the_o lord_n as_o tremellius_n read_v it_o or_o sanctum_fw-la domino_fw-la holiness_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n as_o the_o vulgar_a have_v it_o way_n 2_o 2._o way_n many_o other_o thing_n be_v style_v holy_a by_o communication_n of_o holiness_n and_o receive_v their_o holiness_n from_o this_o fountain_n of_o holiness_n and_o so_o 1._o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n 2._o the_o faithful_a member_n of_o christ_n 3._o the_o outward_a professor_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n 4._o all_o thing_n dedicate_v and_o that_o have_v relation_n to_o god_n service_n as_o time_n person_n place_n and_o thing_n be_v term_v holy_a sanctitate_fw-la relativa_fw-la 1._o the_o man_n christ_n be_v perfect_o and_o singular_o holy_a as_o beda_n say_v and_o that_o 1._o by_o reason_n of_o his_o hypostatical_a union_n with_o the_o godhead_n 2._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o most_o perfect_a qualtity_n of_o holiness_n impress_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o his_o humanity_n 2._o the_o true_a member_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o style_v holy_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o holiness_n which_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n work_v in_o they_o and_o they_o practice_v in_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n 3._o all_o those_o that_o do_v outward_o profess_v the_o holy_a religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v call_v saint_n by_o the_o holy_a apostle_n 1._o rom._n 1._o and_o so_o they_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o all_o other_o that_o either_o do_v profane_a abuse_n or_o neglect_v the_o same_o 4._o all_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v consecrate_a by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v dedicate_v and_o give_v for_o the_o furtherance_n and_o maintenance_n of_o god_n worship_n as_o land_n house_n and_o the_o like_a be_v by_o a_o relative_a sanctity_n right_o term_v holy_a thing_n because_o they_o be_v separate_v and_o set_v apart_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v of_o himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o holy_a use_n to_o bring_v man_n to_o holiness_n to_o honour_n serve_v and_o worship_n god_n that_o be_v holiness_n itself_o and_o in_o this_o respect_n we_o say_v that_o the_o very_a ground_n walls_z window_n and_o timber_n of_o the_o material_a church_n that_o be_v set_v forth_o dedicate_v and_o consecrate_a for_o god_n service_n be_v holy_a thing_n not_o by_o any_o inherent_a real_a sanctity_n infuse_v into_o they_o but_o by_o a_o relative_a holiness_n ascribe_v and_o appropriate_v unto_o they_o by_o their_o dedication_n and_o consecration_n for_o god_n worship_n which_o make_v they_o more_o holy_a and_o so_o to_o be_v deem_v than_o all_o other_o earthly_a thing_n whatsoever_o and_o though_o i_o will_v not_o lose_v my_o time_n and_o waste_v my_o paper_n to_o show_v the_o folly_n and_o vanity_n of_o that_o ridiculous_a deduction_n of_o the_o confuter_n of_o will._n apollonius_n in_o the_o 29._o page_n of_o his_o grallae_n 29._o grallae_n pag_n 29._o against_o secondary_a or_o dependent_a holiness_n yet_o i_o will_v justify_v the_o holiness_n and_o religious_a reverence_n that_o we_o owe_v and_o shall_v render_v unto_o all_o the_o material_a church_n that_o be_v consecrate_a for_o divine-service_n against_o all_o prophaner_n of_o they_o independent_o and_o fanatic_n whatsoever_o and_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o every_o good_a and_o sober_a man_n that_o be_v not_o drink_v with_o a_o prejudicate_a conceit_n against_o god_n house_n i_o shall_v desire_v he_o to_o look_v into_o 2_o chron._n 3.1_o and_o chap._n 6._o where_o he_o may_v find_v the_o consecration_n of_o god_n house_n and_o the_o prayer_n that_o solomon_n make_v at_o the_o consecration_n of_o it_o and_o the_o benefit_n the_o manifold_a benefit_n that_o they_o shall_v reap_v which_o serve_v god_n in_o that_o house_n and_o if_o he_o read_v over_o that_o chapter_n at_o his_o leisure_n and_o read_v it_o often_o and_o then_o serious_o consider_v it_o and_o withal_o remember_v that_o of_o this_o house_n and_o the_o like_a consecrate_a place_n that_o be_v dedicate_v for_o god_n worship_n the_o lord_n himself_o say_v 132.15_o esay_n 56.7_o matth._n 21.13_o jerem._n 7.10_o psal_n 132.15_o my_o house_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o prayer_n for_o all_o people_n and_o our_o saviour_n christ_n confirm_v the_o same_o that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o public_a place_n or_o place_n of_o public_a prayer_n be_v right_o call_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o the_o house_n which_o be_v call_v by_o his_o name_n and_o of_o which_o he_o say_v this_o shall_v be_v my_o rest_n for_o ever_o here_o will_v i_o dwell_v for_o i_o have_v a_o delight_n therein_o will_v he_o not_o confess_v that_o god_n house_n and_o the_o place_n where_o he_o dwell_v be_v holy_a the_o confuter_n of_o apollonius_n confess_v that_o so_o long_o as_o a_o prince_n be_v 26._o grallae_n pag._n 26._o and_o remain_v in_o his_o house_n because_o of_o his_o majesty_n and_o pomp_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o house_n which_o derive_v not_o thence_o some_o dignity_n and_o splendour_n and_o will_v you_o deny_v that_o privilege_n to_o god_n house_n which_o you_o will_v yield_v to_o the_o palace_n of_o a_o earthly_a prince_n no_o certain_o it_o be_v a_o holy_a place_n 88_o vide_fw-la the_o great_a ●ntichrist_n reveal_v l._n 2._o c._n 5._o pag._n 88_o therefore_o as_o god_n will_v be_v serve_v in_o the_o time_n that_o he_o appoint_v and_o by_o the_o person_n that_o he_o choose_v and_o after_o the_o manner_n that_o himself_o prescribe_v so_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v not_o where_o every_o one_o please_v but_o in_o the_o place_n which_o be_v consecrate_a and_o sanctify_a for_o our_o holy_a god_n to_o come_v and_o to_o be_v present_a with_o we_o as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o levit._n 17_o 8._o exod._n 23.19_o and_o chap._n 25._o 8._o where_o the_o lord_n charge_v his_o people_n to_o make_v he_o a_o sanctuary_n 25.8_o exod._n 25.8_o or_o a_o tabernacle_n that_o be_v a_o holy_a house_n or_o temple_n that_o he_o may_v dwell_v among_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n david_n desire_v that_o he_o may_v dwell_v in_o god_n tabernacle_n and_o be_v glad_a when_o the_o people_n say_v 18.20_o psal_n 27.4_o psal_n 122.1_o joh._n 18.20_o we_o will_v go_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o christ_n say_v i_o ever_o teach_v in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o in_o the_o temple_n that_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o ordinary_o and_o always_o when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o temple_n and_o opportunity_n offer_v he_o occasion_n so_o to_o do_v and_o s._n matthew_n say_v the_o blind_a and_o the_o lame_a come_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o temple_n 21.14_o matth._n 21.14_o and_o he_o heal_v they_o and_o so_o must_v we_o come_v unto_o he_o into_o his_o temple_n if_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v heal_v of_o our_o infirmity_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n after_o his_o
for_o they_o that_o serve_v at_o my_o altar_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o that_o my_o servant_n and_o ambassador_n that_o be_v legati_fw-la à_fw-la latere_fw-la shall_v be_v in_o a_o poor_a and_o a_o sad_a condition_n than_o the_o servant_n of_o many_o mean_a gentleman_n and_o we_o shall_v answer_v it_o be_v true_a o_o lord_n that_o thou_o be_v the_o best_a master_n in_o the_o world_n thy_o service_n be_v the_o most_o honourable_a and_o the_o allowance_n that_o thou_o have_v appoint_v for_o they_o be_v very_o ample_a and_o large_a and_o a_o most_o pentiful_a royal_a reward_n and_o we_o know_v that_o they_o which_o will_v faithful_o serve_v thou_o shall_v want_v no_o manner_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a 34.10_o psal_n 34.10_o but_o the_o son_n of_o belial_n the_o offspring_n of_o baalam_n that_o love_v the_o wage_n of_o unrighteousness_n have_v violate_v the_o covenant_n of_o levi_n and_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o and_o be_v too_o strong_a for_o he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o tithe_n and_o oblation_n the_o land_n and_o the_o house_n of_o thou_o our_o god_n into_o their_o possession_n and_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n bare_a and_o naked_a to_o cry_v out_o p●llis_n &_o ossa_fw-la sum_fw-la miser_n and_o that_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o do_v not_o and_o can_v perform_v and_o do_v the_o service_n that_o thou_o require_v and_o we_o desire_v to_o do_v and_o then_o let_v the_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o the_o violater_n of_o holy_a thing_n away_o the_o soldier_n that_o take_v away_o the_o good_n and_o land_n of_o the_o church_n see_v what_o the_o prophet_n say_v of_o levi_n and_o of_o his_o enemy_n for_o of_o levi_n he_o say_v bless_v o_o lord_n his_o substance_n and_o accept_v the_o work_n of_o his_o hand_n and_o of_o his_o enemy_n he_o say_v smite_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v up_o against_o he_o and_o of_o they_o that_o hate_v he_o 33.11_o deut._n 33.11_o smite_v they_o through_o and_o thorough_a that_o they_o rise_v not_o again_o and_o i_o do_v wonder_n that_o this_o prayer_n of_o moses_n do_v not_o make_v the_o heart_n of_o all_o church-robber_n to_o shake_v and_o tremble_v when_o they_o do_v consider_v it_o but_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n church_n that_o care_v not_o how_o much_o they_o peel_v and_o pluck_v from_o the_o patrimony_n thereof_o and_o will_v have_v the_o minister_n and_o bishop_n that_o be_v like_o fix_a star_n in_o god_n right_a hand_n to_o be_v like_o the_o planet_n in_o the_o zodiac_n that_o have_v no_o settle_a place_n but_o be_v carry_v about_o by_o a_o erratical_a and_o uncertain_a motion_n yet_o can_v they_o endure_v to_o be_v term_v sacrilegious_a but_o they_o cry_v out_o and_o say_v no_o and_o god_n forbid_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v away_o any_o thing_n from_o the_o church_n that_o belong_v unto_o the_o church_n so_o like_o the_o jew_n that_o cry_v templum_fw-la domini_fw-la templum_fw-la domini_fw-la when_o they_o profane_v the_o same_o most_o of_o all_o their_o word_n be_v smooth_a than_o oil_n when_o in_o very_a deed_n they_o be_v very_a sword_n and_o will_v not_o be_v keep_v back_o from_o pierce_v we_o and_o christ_n himself_o through_o our_o side_n therefore_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o show_v unto_o they_o the_o truth_n clergy_n the_o equity_n of_o the_o large_a and_o liberal_a maintenance_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o equity_n of_o that_o large_a and_o liberal_a maintenance_n that_o god_n allow_v and_o be_v therefore_o due_a and_o not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o this_o truth_n the_o holy_a scripture_n confirm_v many_o way_n as_o 1._o that_o they_o shall_v have_v maintenance_n it_o be_v manifest_a and_o few_o but_o mad_a man_n will_v deny_v it_o because_o the_o labourer_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n 10.7_o luke_n 10.7_o and_o the_o apostle_n demand_v who_o plant_v a_o vineyard_n and_o eat_v not_o of_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o or_o who_o feed_v a_o flock_n and_o do_v not_o taste_v of_o the_o milk_n thereof_o 5.7_o 1_o cor._n 5.7_o and_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o husbandman_n and_o the_o dresser_n of_o god_n vineyard_n and_o the_o shepherd_n of_o his_o flock_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v that_o they_o which_o minister_v about_o holy_a thing_n live_v of_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o they_o which_o wait_v at_o the_o altar_n be_v partaker_n with_o the_o altar_n even_o so_o have_v the_o lord_n ordain_v 9.13.14_o 1_o cor._n 9.13.14_o that_o they_o which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o other_o reason_n that_o this_o our_o apostle_n produce_v be_v 1._o a_o minori_fw-la the_o mouth_n of_o the_o ox_n that_o tread_v out_o the_o corn_n be_v not_o to_o be_v muzzle_v 2._o a_o majori_fw-la the_o preacher_n of_o god_n word_n do_v minister_v unto_o the_o people_n spiritual_a grace_n therefore_o the_o people_n shall_v not_o muzzle_v the_o mouth_n of_o their_o preacher_n and_o keep_v back_o their_o carnal_a thing_n from_o they_o they_o be_v so_o plain_a and_o so_o pregnant_a to_o prove_v that_o minister_n shall_v have_v maintenance_n that_o our_o very_a adversary_n can_v contradict_v it_o obj._n yet_o for_o all_o this_o some_o fanatic_a spirit_n void_a of_o all_o reason_n do_v object_n that_o as_o nehemiah_n because_o he_o fear_v god_n spare_v the_o people_n from_o those_o exaction_n of_o money_n and_o corn_n and_o wine_n which_o other_o governor_n have_v take_v from_o they_o 12._o nehem._n 5.15_o 16._o &_o v._o 10_o 12._o and_o pray_v the_o nobility_n that_o they_o shall_v exact_v no_o such_o thing_n from_o their_o brethren_n and_o call_v the_o priest_n also_o and_o take_v a_o oath_n of_o they_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v according_o so_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n shall_v much_o rather_o spare_v their_o people_n and_o not_o exact_v such_o part_n and_o portion_n from_o they_o as_o they_o do_v sol._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o nehemiah_n be_v a_o potent_a and_o a_o powerful_a man_n that_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v at_o his_o table_n a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o ruler_n 17._o verse_n 17._o beside_o those_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o from_o among_o the_o heathen_a round_o about_o he_o and_o the_o people_n new_o return_v from_o their_o captivity_n be_v very_o poor_a and_o miserable_a 5._o verse_n 3_o 4_o 5._o and_o the_o exaction_n that_o be_v take_v from_o they_o be_v too_o heavy_a and_o very_o unjust_a therefore_o this_o godly_a governor_n take_v pity_n upon_o they_o and_o in_o piety_n forgive_v it_o they_o but_o this_o particular_a example_n be_v no_o precept_n for_o we_o to_o obey_v or_o rule_v to_o follow_v it_o especial_o consider_v the_o disparity_n betwixt_o we_o and_o nehemiah_n and_o betwixt_o our_o people_n now_o and_o the_o jew_n at_o that_o time_n and_o the_o great_a difference_n that_o be_v betwixt_o their_o take_n of_o most_o unjust_a taxation_n and_o our_o require_v the_o just_a reward_n and_o wage_n of_o they_o that_o be_v far_o better_a able_a to_o pay_v it_o than_o we_o to_o forbear_v it_o for_o our_o just_a and_o great_a pain_n yet_o obj._n 2._o they_o do_v object_v the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o especial_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o make_v the_o labour_n of_o his_o hand_n the_o porter_n that_o bring_v in_o his_o live_n and_o protest_v before_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n 33.34_o act._n ●0_n 33.34_o that_o he_o covet_v no_o man_n silver_n or_o gold_n 11.9_o 2_o cor._n 11.9_o or_o apparel_n but_o his_o hand_n minister_v to_o his_o necessity_n and_o tell_v the_o corinthian_n that_o in_o all_o thing_n be_v keep_v himself_o from_o be_v burdensome_a unto_o they_o sol._n 1_o it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o our_o minister_n can_v possible_o do_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v unless_o they_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n the_o same_o grace_n and_o the_o same_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o inspiration_n and_o in_o the_o same_o measure_n as_o the_o apostle_n have_v for_o they_o be_v immediate_o and_o extraordinary_o inspire_v with_o ability_n to_o preach_v and_o to_o answer_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v demand_v of_o they_o in_o illa_fw-la hora_fw-la even_o in_o a_o instant_n and_o to_o do_v miracle_n when_o need_n require_v but_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o any_o learning_n or_o knowledge_n without_o industry_n and_o study_n and_o great_a painstaking_a and_o therefore_o we_o can_v be_v preacher_n of_o god_n word_n if_o we_o be_v force_v to_o be_v trader_n in_o the_o world_n to_o work_v with_o our_o hand_n and_o to_o live_v by_o our_o work_n sol._n 2_o 2._o s._n paul_n do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o never_o take_v wage_n of_o any_o church_n but_o that_o he_o covet_v no_o man_n silver_n and_o forbear_v to_o
evil_a advice_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o the_o empress_n faustina_n do_v very_o much_o favour_n the_o emperor_n valentinian_n send_v certain_a officer_n unto_o s._n ambrose_n to_o require_v he_o to_o yield_v up_o and_o surrender_v his_o church_n of_o milan_n and_o all_o the_o possession_n thereof_o into_o their_o hand_n the_o holy_a bishop_n in_o a_o letter_n that_o he_o send_v to_o his_o sister_n marcellina_n tell_v she_o what_o he_o do_v say_v when_o we_o be_v command_v to_o deliver_v up_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o vessel_n and_o possession_n thereof_o into_o the_o officer_n hand_n i_o make_v this_o answer_n unto_o they_o if_o you_o have_v demand_v my_o estate_n and_o good_n land_n house_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v gold_n silver_n or_o the_o like_a i_o will_v very_o ready_o yield_v they_o to_o you_o but_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o power_n to_o yield_v up_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o church_n and_o be_v but_o only_o commit_v to_o my_o trust_n and_o custody_n and_o therefore_o herein_o because_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o good_n of_o god_n 33._o ambros_n l._n 1._o epistol_n &_o epist_n 33._o i_o have_v a_o special_a respect_n to_o the_o save_n of_o the_o emperor_n soul_n because_o it_o neither_o become_v i_o the_o bishop_n to_o give_v up_o the_o vessel_n and_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o he_o the_o emperor_n to_o ask_v they_o and_o therefore_o i_o beseech_v his_o majesty_n to_o take_v my_o word_n in_o good_a part_n and_o if_o he_o love_v himself_o to_o desist_v from_o offer_v such_o a_o injury_n unto_o christ_n and_o the_o same_o father_n in_o concione_fw-la de_fw-la basilicis_fw-la non_fw-la tradendis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la say_v solvimus_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la caesari_n we_o give_v to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v caesar_n and_o to_o god_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v god_n for_o if_o caesar_n demand_v his_o subsidy_n or_o tribute_n we_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o pay_v it_o but_o if_o he_o will_v have_v the_o church_n and_o church-goods_a they_o must_v not_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o caesar_n quia_fw-la templum_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la 5._o idem_fw-la de_fw-la basilicis_fw-la non_fw-la t●adendis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la tomo_fw-la 5._o non_fw-la jus_o caesaris_n because_o the_o temple_n and_o what_o belong_v unto_o the_o temple_n be_v god_n right_a and_o not_o the_o right_a of_o caesar_n and_o this_o we_o say_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o caesar_n because_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o honourable_a for_o the_o emperor_n than_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o same_o may_v i_o say_v of_o every_o king_n prince_z or_o potentate_n and_o here_o i_o must_v crave_v leave_n to_o insert_v a_o story_n how_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o pope_n xistus_fw-la a_o cunning_a persecute_v tyrant_n come_v to_o the_o treasurer_n of_o the_o church_n gardiner_n the_o story_n of_o a_o crafty_a tyrant_n and_o a_o faithful_a pastor_n relate_v by_o doctor_n gardiner_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o you_o christian_n do_v compl●●●_n that_o you_o be_v cruel_o deal_v withal_o and_o perhaps_o you_o have_v some_o just_a c●●●e_n to_o complain_v and_o therefore_o i_o be_o far_o from_o any_o bloody_a purpose_n be_v as_o unwilling_a to_o proceed_v in_o any_o capital_a sentence_n against_o you_o as_o yourselves_o be_v willing_a to_o live_v but_o i_o understand_v that_o your_o bishop_n be_v very_o rich_a and_o have_v store_n of_o vessel_n of_o go●d_n and_o silver_n and_o many_o man_n do_v give_v their_o land_n and_o live_n unto_o your_o church_n whereby_o you_o must_v needs_o become_v exceed_v rich_a and_o yet_o your_o god_n be_v no_o mammonist_n but_o have_v leave_v many_o wholesome_a precept_n against_o covetousness_n and_o have_v advise_v you_o to_o give_v unto_o caesar_n what_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n and_o you_o know_v that_o his_o war_n and_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v very_o chargeable_a unto_o he_o and_o we_o know_v that_o your_o profession_n be_v not_o to_o hoard_v up_o wealth_n and_o to_o make_v account_n of_o transitory_a thing_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o be_v please_v to_o forgo_v those_o land_n and_o riches_n and_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o you_o have_v and_o care_v not_o for_o i_o will_v warrant_v you_o both_o safety_n of_o life_n and_o freedom_n to_o use_v your_o religion_n according_a to_o your_o conscience_n to_o who_o the_o godly_a man_n answer_v peristoph_n prudent_a peristoph_n that_o he_o desire_v three_o day_n liberty_n to_o return_v his_o resolution_n and_o by_o the_o three_o day_n he_o have_v gather_v together_o a_o multitude_n of_o poor_a lame_a blind_a impotent_a man_n and_o woman_n who_o name_n he_o deliver_v up_o in_o a_o schedule_n into_o the_o tyrant_n hand_n and_o say_v these_o be_v the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n for_o who_o i_o be_o but_o the_o steward_n of_o those_o good_n that_o you_o desire_v and_o my_o master_n command_v i_o to_o keep_v for_o they_o and_o for_o his_o service_n a_o bless_a man_n that_o herein_o show_v he_o fear_v god_n more_o than_o man_n and_o i_o will_v all_o our_o bishop_n that_o have_v alienate_v and_o pass_v away_o the_o land_n house_n and_o p●ssessions_n of_o the_o church_n in_o long_a lease_n and_o fee-ferms_a unto_o their_o child_n and_o friend_n for_o a_o trifle_a rent_n only_o reserve_v unto_o their_o successor_n have_v have_v some_o part_n of_o this_o good_a man_n spirit_n for_o then_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v leave_v so_o naked_a as_o it_o be_v but_o you_o may_v remember_v the_o canon_n that_o i_o quote_v to_o you_o before_o which_o say_v if_o any_o bishop_n do_v grant_v the_o tithe_n episcopus_fw-la caus_n 16._o qu._n 7._o c._n 3._o oreg_n 7._o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la à_fw-la modo_fw-la episcopus_fw-la or_o other_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n to_o any_o lay_v man_n let_v he_o be_v number_v among_o the_o great_a heretic_n and_o let_v his_o name_n be_v like_o demas_n a_o lover_n of_o this_o world_n more_o than_o a_o lover_n of_o god_n and_o i_o hope_v that_o by_o this_o which_o i_o have_v already_o show_v it_o be_v apparent_a unto_o you_o and_o to_o all_o man_n that_o will_v not_o be_v blind_a have_v their_o eye_n open_a and_o grope_v with_o the_o sodomite_n for_o the_o wall_n at_o noonday_n the_o donation_n of_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n whether_o house_n land_n or_o good_n which_o they_o have_v free_o dedicate_v and_o give_v to_o god_n to_o perpetuate_v the_o service_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ought_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n to_o be_v either_o by_o the_o bishop_n alienate_v or_o by_o his_o child_n or_o any_o other_o person_n receive_v and_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o the_o will_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o donor_n and_o i_o say_v here_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n that_o no_o bishop_n can_v pass_v it_o away_o nor_o any_o lie_v person_n can_v receive_v it_o and_o detain_v it_o from_o the_o church_n without_o sin_n and_o commit_v a_o most_o horrible_a sacrilege_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o if_o man_n do_v but_o remember_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o a_o testament_n 9.17_o heb._n 9.17_o or_o a_o man_n last_o will_n be_v of_o force_n and_o inviolable_a after_o man_n be_v dead_a and_o that_o the_o very_a gentile_n and_o heathen_n think_v it_o a_o piaculum_fw-la and_o a_o heinous_a offence_n to_o infringe_v and_o alter_v a_o man_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n i_o wonder_v why_o these_o man_n will_n that_o give_v their_o own_o good_n and_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o do_v what_o they_o will_v with_o their_o own_o to_o god_n and_o to_o maintain_v god_n service_n shall_v not_o be_v of_o force_n and_o stand_v unalterable_a but_o that_o man_n will_v so_o fearless_o break_v they_o and_o so_o presumptuous_o take_v away_o the_o thing_n that_o they_o bequeath_v unto_o god_n especial_o if_o man_n consider_v the_o form_n and_o style_n of_o their_o donation_n which_o i_o find_v thus_o express_v in_o sundry_a copy_n these_o thing_n be_v lawful_o our_o own_o we_o offer_v and_o give_v to_o god_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o his_o service_n from_o who_o 285._o capit._fw-la car._n l._n 6._o cap._n 285._o if_o any_o man_n presume_v to_o take_v they_o away_o which_o we_o hope_v no_o man_n will_v attempt_v to_o do_v but_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v do_v let_v his_o account_n be_v without_o favour_n and_o his_o judgement_n without_o mercy_n in_o the_o last_o day_n when_o he_o come_v to_o receive_v his_o doom_n which_o be_v due_a for_o his_o sacrilege_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v against_o that_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n unto_o who_o we_o have_v give_v and_o dedicate_v the_o same_o for_o this_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o their_o dedication_n shall_v in_o my_o judgement_n make_v
water_n which_o accompany_v the_o person_n accuse_v to_o westminster_n the_o next_o day_n after_o his_o majesty_n departure_n as_o if_o they_o have_v pass_v in_o a_o roman_a triumph_n conceive_v the_o danger_n to_o be_v so_o great_a that_o i_o call_v heaven_n to_o witness_v they_o bless_a god_n that_o so_o gracious_o put_v it_o in_o the_o king_n heart_n rather_o to_o pass_v away_o overnight_o though_o very_o late_o than_o hazard_v the_o danger_n that_o may_v have_v ensue_v the_o day_n follow_v the_o meaning_n therefore_o of_o both_o house_n may_v be_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v which_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v a_o tumult_n and_o no_o marvel_n because_o they_o receive_v encouragement_n as_o we_o believe_v from_o their_o defence_n and_o no_o reproof_n that_o we_o find_v be_v make_v for_o this_o indignity_n offer_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o if_o i_o be_v constrain_v and_o in_o danger_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o i_o that_o i_o be_o vote_v free_a and_o safe_a for_o if_o that_o which_o look_v as_o like_o a_o tumult_n as_o that_o do_v or_o as_o the_o representation_n of_o my_o face_n in_o the_o true_a glass_n be_v like_o my_o face_n do_v come_v against_o i_o and_o encompass_v i_o about_o though_o i_o may_v be_v perhaps_o in_o more_o safety_n yet_o i_o shall_v think_v myself_o in_o great_a fear_n and_o in_o no_o more_o security_n than_o his_o majesty_n be_v at_o edge-hill_n 3._o because_o as_o the_o viewer_n of_o the_o observat_fw-la have_v very_o well_o express_v it_o reason_n 3_o 7._o p._n 7._o no_o act_n of_o parliament_n can_v prevail_v to_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o right_n and_o authority_n as_o a_o attainder_n by_o parliament_n can_v not_o bar_v the_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n from_o descend_v on_o king_n hen._n 7._o nor_o be_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n disable_n king_n hen._n 6._o to_o reassume_a the_o government_n of_o his_o people_n of_o any_o force_n but_o without_o any_o repeal_n in_o itself_o frustrate_a and_o void_a 7._o rep._n 14._o calvin_n case_n a_o act_n of_o parliament_n can_v take_v away_o the_o protection_n or_o the_o subject_n service_n which_o be_v due_a by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n 11._o rep_n sur_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr ware_n case_n william_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr ware_n although_o disable_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v nevertheless_o call_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o sit_v as_o a_o peer_n in_o parliament_n for_o that_o it_o seem_v the_o queen_n can_v not_o be_v bar_v of_o the_o service_n and_o counsel_n of_o any_o of_o her_o subject_n 2._o h._n 7._o 6._o a_o statute_n that_o the_o king_n by_o no_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la shall_v dispense_v with_o it_o be_v void_a because_o it_o will_v take_v a_o necessary_a part_n of_o government_n out_o of_o the_o king_n hand_n and_o therefore_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o act_n can_v deprive_v the_o king_n of_o the_o service_n and_o counsel_n of_o all_o his_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n but_o that_o it_o be_v void_a of_o itself_o and_o need_v no_o repeal_n or_o if_o otherwise_o yet_o see_v that_o beside_o all_o this_o 13._o of_o the_o bishop_n be_v shut_v in_o prison_n when_o this_o act_n pass_v and_o their_o protestation_n be_v make_v long_o before_o this_o time_n and_o it_o be_v so_o undue_o frame_v so_o illegal_o prosecute_v and_o with_o such_o compulsive_a threat_n and_o terror_n procure_v to_o be_v pass_v i_o hope_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o next_o parliament_n together_o with_o their_o love_n and_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n and_o churchman_n will_v nullify_v the_o same_o chap._n vi_o show_v the_o plot_n of_o the_o faction_n to_o gain_v unto_o themselves_o the_o friendship_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o scot_n and_o to_o what_o end_n they_o frame_v their_o new_a protestation_n how_o they_o provoke_v the_o irish_a to_o rebel_n and_o what_o other_o thing_n they_o gain_v thereby_o and_o thus_o the_o sectary_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o faction_n in_o this_o parliament_n have_v by_o their_o craft_n and_o subtlety_n prevail_v to_o have_v all_o the_o chief_a impediment_n of_o their_o design_n to_o be_v remove_v so_o now_o the_o hedge_n be_v break_v down_o and_o all_o the_o boar_n of_o the_o forest_n may_v now_o come_v into_o the_o vineyard_n to_o destroy_v the_o vine_n and_o to_o undermine_v the_o city_n of_o god_n but_o into_o their_o counsel_n let_v not_o my_o soul_n come_v 2._o when_o they_o have_v take_v away_o these_o stop_n and_o hindrance_n of_o their_o project_n five_o 2._o the_o furtherance_n of_o their_o design_n be_v five_o they_o be_v to_o recollect_v and_o make_v up_o the_o furtherance_n that_o may_v help_v to_o advance_v their_o cause_n for_o the_o sound_n of_o their_o new_a church_n and_o the_o establish_n of_o their_o famous_a democratical_a government_n and_o popular_a commonwealth_n and_o these_o i_o find_v to_o be_v principal_o five_o 1._o the_o gain_n of_o their_o brethren_n of_o scotland_n to_o become_v their_o fast_n and_o faithful_a friend_n 2._o the_o frame_n of_o a_o protestation_n to_o frighten_v the_o papist_n and_o to_o ensnare_v the_o simple_a to_o be_v lead_v as_o they_o list_v to_o prosecute_v their_o design_n 3._o the_o condemn_v of_o our_o late_a canon_n as_o abominable_a in_o their_o judgement_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o their_o religion_n 4._o the_o appoint_v of_o a_o new_a synod_n the_o like_a whereof_o be_v never_o hear_v in_o the_o church_n since_o adam_n to_o compose_v such_o article_n as_o they_o like_v and_o to_o frame_v such_o discipline_n as_o shall_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o their_o own_o disposition_n 5._o the_o settle_n of_o a_o militia_n a_o word_n that_o the_o vulgar_a know_v not_o what_o it_o be_v for_o to_o secure_v the_o kingdom_n as_o they_o pretend_v from_o those_o danger_n that_o they_o fear_v that_o be_v from_o those_o jack_n of_o lent_n and_o man_n of_o clout_n which_o themselves_o set_v up_o as_o deadly_a enemy_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o state_n but_o indeed_o insensible_o to_o get_v all_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o realm_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o their_o confederate_n that_o so_o they_o may_v like_o the_o ephori_fw-la bridle_v the_o king_n and_o bring_v he_o as_o they_o please_v to_o abolish_v and_o establish_v what_o law_n and_o government_n they_o shall_v propose_v whereby_o perhaps_o he_o may_v continue_v king_n in_o name_n but_o they_o in_o deed._n these_o be_v the_o thing_n they_o aim_v at_o and_o they_o effect_v the_o first_o three_o before_o they_o can_v be_v descry_v and_o their_o plot_n discover_v but_o in_o the_o other_o two_o they_o be_v prevent_v when_o god_n say_v unto_o they_o as_o he_o do_v unto_o the_o sea_n hitherto_o shall_v thou_o go_v and_o no_o further_o here_o shall_v thou_o stay_v thy_o proud_a wave_n and_o therefore_o i_o be_o confident_a and_o i_o wish_v all_o good_a christian_n be_v so_o that_o their_o purpose_n shall_v never_o succeed_v nor_o themselves_o prosper_v therein_o while_o the_o world_n last_v because_o god_n have_v so_o merciful_o reveal_v so_o much_o so_o gracious_o assist_v our_o king_n and_o so_o miraculous_o not_o only_o deliver_v he_o from_o they_o but_o also_o strengthen_v he_o against_o they_o contrary_a to_o all_o appear_a likelihood_n to_o this_o very_a day_n which_o be_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o secure_v our_o faith_n that_o we_o shall_v by_o the_o help_n of_o our_o god_n escape_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o destructive_a design_n but_o to_o display_v their_o banner_n to_o discover_v their_o project_n and_o to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v what_o they_o be_v and_o how_o close_o and_o yet_o cunning_o they_o go_v about_o to_o effect_v their_o work_n i_o will_v in_o a_o plain_a manner_n set_v down_o what_o i_o know_v and_o what_o i_o have_v collect_v from_o other_o write_n and_o from_o man_n that_o be_v fide_fw-la dig●i_fw-la for_o one_o man_n eye_n can_v see_v all_o thing_n nor_o infallible_o perceive_v the_o mystery_n of_o all_o particular_n for_o to_o confirm_v the_o faithful_a subject_n in_o their_o due_a obedience_n both_o to_o god_n and_o their_o king_n and_o to_o undeceive_v the_o poor_a seduce_a people_n that_o they_o perish_v not_o in_o the_o contradiction_n of_o corah_n 1._o it_o be_v believe_v not_o without_o cause_n england_n 1_o the_o endear_n of_o themselves_o unto_o the_o scot_n our_o sectary_n the_o inviter_n of_o the_o scot_n to_o england_n with_o far_o great_a probability_n than_o a_o bare_a suspicion_n that_o our_o own_o anabaptistical_n sectary_n and_o this_o faction_n be_v the_o first_o inviter_n of_o those_o angry_a spirit_n that_o conceive_v some_o cause_n to_o be_v discontent_v and_o be_v glad_a of_o secret_a entertainer_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o this_o kingdom_n whatsoever_o those_o our_o brethren_n of_o scotland_n do_v i_o will_v bury_v it_o according_a to_o their_o act_n in_o oblivion_n neither_o approve_v nor_o
to_o pass_v they_o and_o though_o not_o for_o any_o offence_n that_o we_o see_v in_o they_o yet_o for_o the_o scandal_n that_o may_v be_v take_v at_o they_o we_o hearty_o wish_v they_o have_v never_o be_v so_o zealous_o propound_v at_o that_o time_n but_o the_o sectary_n of_o london_n and_o the_o prevalent_a faction_n in_o parliament_n do_v with_o open_a mouth_n spend_v much_o time_n to_o the_o no_o small_a prejudice_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o make_v many_o long_a speech_n to_o exclaim_v against_o they_o as_o against_o a_o bundle_n of_o superstition_n that_o obscure_v the_o purity_n of_o our_o religion_n a_o introduction_n unto_o popery_n and_o a_o intolerable_a unheard_a of_o the_o like_a invasion_n upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o subject_n that_o revive_v again_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n which_o contrary_a to_o our_o fundamental_a law_n have_v encroach_v to_o make_v canon_n and_o constitution_n to_o bind_v our_o conscience_n whereupon_o they_o canvas_v they_o and_o condemn_v they_o out_o of_o their_o house_n and_o the_o house_n of_o god_n out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o also_o the_o contriver_n of_o they_o and_o consenter_n to_o they_o they_o terrify_v and_o threaten_v to_o adjudge_v they_o sometime_o with_o a_o praemunire_n to_o have_v forfeit_v all_o their_o good_n and_o possession_n and_o sometime_o to_o be_v fine_v as_o we_o be_v at_o last_o with_o such_o a_o heavy_a mulct_n as_o in_o all_o other_o man_n judgement_n do_v far_o exceed_v the_o pretend_a offence_n especial_o of_o we_o that_o never_o consent_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o we_o find_v not_o only_o in_o lindwood_n and_o other_o of_o our_o canonist_n but_o also_o in_o the_o book_n of_o martyr_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o english_a history_n that_o the_o arch-bishop_n within_o their_o province_n have_v at_o several_a time_n make_v canon_n and_o constitution_n for_o the_o regulate_v of_o all_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n without_o any_o suspicion_n of_o the_o least_o violation_n of_o our_o law_n but_o the_o faction_n say_v sic_fw-la volumus_fw-la and_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n understand_v what_o be_v law_n better_o than_o i_o do_v and_o therefore_o according_o before_o the_o maker_n of_o they_o be_v call_v to_o make_v their_o answer_n by_o what_o authority_n they_o make_v they_o or_o by_o what_o law_n they_o can_v justify_v they_o they_o reject_v the_o canon_n and_o censure_v their_o maker_n yet_o notwithstanding_o their_o distaste_n of_o they_o it_o be_v conceive_v by_o some_o that_o the_o clergy_n have_v his_o majesty_n writ_n to_o be_v convocate_v and_o leave_v to_o compose_v such_o canon_n as_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o discharge_n of_o their_o duty_n and_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v the_o royal_a assent_n and_o approbation_n to_o all_o that_o they_o conclude_v which_o be_v all_o that_o i_o find_v the_o statute_n provide_v in_o this_o case_n require_v though_o they_o shall_v be_v defective_a or_o perhaps_o offensive_a in_o some_o circumstance_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v not_o legal_o abrogate_a after_o a_o full_a hear_n of_o all_o party_n and_o the_o king_n consent_n to_o reject_v they_o as_o it_o be_v to_o approve_v they_o they_o be_v still_o as_o bind_v and_o in_o as_o full_a force_n as_o ever_o they_o be_v though_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o will_v not_o undertake_v the_o task_n to_o make_v that_o good_a when_o as_o both_o the_o house_n have_v condemn_v they_o but_o i_o say_v 4._o this_o scandal_n take_v against_o these_o canon_n synod_n 4._o the_o appoint_v of_o a_o new_a frame_v synod_n make_v way_n for_o the_o faction_n to_o call_v for_o a_o new_a synod_n or_o assembly_n of_o divine_n for_o the_o rectify_v of_o thing_n amiss_o as_o well_o in_o discipline_n as_o in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o this_o new_a intend_a synod_n the_o divine_n be_v nominate_v not_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o all_o nation_n stone_n layman_n chooser_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o if_o a_o shepherd_n do_v choose_v precious_a stone_n since_o the_o first_o synod_n or_o council_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o divine_n that_o can_v best_o judge_v of_o their_o own_o ability_n as_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n but_o fear_v the_o clergy_n will_v have_v send_v man_n that_o be_v too_o orthodoxal_a for_o their_o faith_n they_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o right_n and_o forget_v their_o protestation_n to_o defend_v the_o right_n of_o the_o subject_a the_o choice_n be_v make_v by_o themselves_o that_o be_v lay_v man_n and_o young_a man_n and_o many_o of_o they_o perhaps_o profane_v man_n or_o at_o least_o not_o so_o religious_a nor_o so_o judicious_a as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v for_o a_o business_n of_o this_o nature_n of_o so_o great_a concernment_n as_o the_o direction_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o their_o eternal_a bliss_n and_o now_o they_o be_v nominate_v we_o know_v most_o of_o they_o what_o they_o be_v man_n not_o only_o just_o suspect_v to_o be_v ill_o dispose_v to_o the_o peace_n of_o our_o church_n and_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o innovation_n to_o alter_v the_o government_n choose_v what_o manner_n of_o man_n they_o have_v choose_v to_o reject_v and_o cast_v away_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n to_o oppose_v episcopacy_n and_o to_o displcae_fw-la the_o grave_n and_o godly_a governor_n of_o god_n church_n but_o also_o apparent_o fashion_v to_o the_o humour_n of_o these_o their_o own_o disciple_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o their_o determination_n that_o although_o some_o few_o canonical_a man_n and_o most_o reverend_a learned_a and_o religious_a bishop_n and_o other_o for_o fashion_n sake_n to_o blind_v the_o world_n be_v name_v among_o they_o yet_o when_o as_o in_o a_o parliament_n so_o in_o a_o synod_n the_o most_o desperate_a faction_n if_o they_o prove_v prevalent_a to_o be_v the_o major_a part_n will_v carry_v any_o thing_n in_o despite_n of_o the_o better_a part_n they_o shall_v stand_v but_o as_o cipher_n able_a to_o do_v nothing_o they_o may_v abolish_v our_o old_a establish_a government_n erect_v their_o own_o new_a invent_a discipline_n and_o propagate_v their_o well_o affect_a doctrine_n in_o all_o church_n for_o you_o may_v judge_v of_o they_o by_o their_o compeer_n goodwin_n burrows_n arrow-smith_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o ignorant_a factious_a and_o schismatical_a minister_n that_o together_o with_o those_o intrude_a mechanic_n who_o without_o any_o calling_n either_o from_o god_n or_o man_n do_v step_n from_o the_o butcher_n board_n or_o their_o horse_n stable_n into_o the_o preacher_n pulpit_n be_v the_o bellows_o which_o blow_v up_o this_o fire_n that_o threaten_v the_o destruction_n of_o our_o land_n like_o shebah_n trumpet_n to_o summon_v the_o people_n unto_o rebellion_n and_o like_o the_o red_a dragon_n in_o the_o revelation_n which_o give_v they_o all_o his_o poison_n and_o make_v they_o eloquent_a to_o disgorge_v their_o malice_n and_o to_o cast_v forth_o flood_n of_o slander_n after_o those_o that_o keep_v loyalty_n to_o their_o sovereign_n and_o to_o belch_v forth_o their_o unsavoury_a reproach_n against_o those_o that_o discover_v their_o affect_a ignorance_n and_o seditious_a wickedness_n in_o defence_n of_o truth_n and_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o this_o faction_n to_o seduce_v the_o poor_a people_n to_o the_o desolation_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n if_o not_o timely_o prevent_v by_o their_o repentance_n and_o assistance_n to_o enable_v he_o who_o god_n have_v make_v our_o protector_n to_o defend_v we_o against_o all_o such_o transcendent_a wickedness_n and_o these_o be_v the_o main_a end_n for_o which_o they_o summon_v such_o a_o new_a synod_n of_o their_o furious_a and_o fanatic_a teacher_n upon_o who_o temper_n and_o fidelity_n i_o believe_v no_o wise_a man_n that_o know_v they_o will_v lay_v the_o least_o weight_n of_o his_o soul_n felicity_n choose_v whar_n synod_n they_o shall_v have_v choose_v whereas_o if_o they_o desire_v a_o reformation_n of_o thing_n amiss_o and_o not_o rather_o a_o alteration_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o the_o abolition_n of_o our_o now_o settle_a government_n they_o will_v have_v call_v for_o such_o a_o synod_n as_o be_v in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n when_o the_o 39_o article_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v compose_v and_o such_o as_o they_o need_v not_o to_o be_v ashamed_a to_o own_o in_o future_a time_n nor_o the_o best_a refuse_v to_o associate_v the_o rest_n for_o the_o illegality_n of_o their_o election_n for_o if_o there_o be_v any_o scandalous_a governor_n as_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o may_v be_v a_o cham_fw-mi in_o the_o ark_n a_o judas_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o perhaps_o a_o unjustifiable_a prelate_n among_o the_o bishop_n as_o there_o be_v a_o proud_a
in_o the_o blood_n of_o so_o many_o faithful_a christian_n do_v sing_v with_o the_o psalmist_n 9_o psal_n 58_o 9_o the_o righteous_a rejoice_v when_o they_o see_v this_o vengeance_n they_o shall_v wash_v their_o foot_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o ungodly_a for_o as_o solomon_n say_v the_o tender_a mercy_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v mere_a cruelty_n 12.10_o prov._n 12.10_o and_o i_o believe_v the_o first_o inventor_n of_o that_o design_n to_o root_v out_o all_o the_o papist_n in_o ireland_n and_o to_o get_v that_o act_n to_o purchase_v all_o the_o land_n of_o the_o rebel_n have_v taste_v too_o much_o of_o this_o bitter_a root_n of_o such_o destructive_a doctrine_n whereby_o you_o see_v how_o the_o religion_n of_o these_o man_n rob_v we_o of_o our_o estate_n keep_v no_o faith_n with_o we_o and_o take_v away_o our_o life_n 7._o though_o among_o the_o work_n of_o god_n every_o flower_n can_v be_v a_o lily_n 3.11_o 7._o they_o will_v have_v a_o party_n among_o all_o man_n both_o in_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n gal._n 5_o 6._o col._n 3.11_o every_o beast_n can_v be_v a_o lion_n every_o bird_n can_v be_v a_o eagle_n and_o every_o planet_n can_v be_v a_o phoebus_n yet_o in_o the_o school_n of_o these_o man_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o to_o be_v new_o erect_v church_n that_o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n and_o neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o whether_o they_o be_v bond_n or_o free_a master_n or_o servant_n jew_z or_o gentile_a barbarian_a scythian_a a_o country-clown_n or_o a_o court_n gallant_a rich_a or_o poor_a it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o god_n because_o these_o title_n of_o honour_n king_n lord_n knight_n and_o gentleman_n be_v no_o entity_n of_o god_n make_v but_o the_o creature_n of_o man_n invention_n to_o puff_n he_o up_o with_o pride_n and_o not_o to_o bring_v he_o unto_o god_n and_o therefore_o though_o for_o the_o bring_n of_o their_o great_a good_a work_n to_o pass_v they_o be_v yet_o content_v to_o make_v the_o earl_n of_o essex_n their_o general_n and_z warwick_z their_o admiral_n and_o so_o pym_n and_o hampden_n great_a officer_n of_o state_n yet_o when_o the_o work_n be_v do_v their_o plot_n perfect_v and_o their_o government_n establish_v than_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o as_o now_o they_o will_v eradicate_v episcopacy_n and_o make_v all_o our_o clergy_n equal_a as_o if_o all_o have_v equal_o but_o one_o talon_n and_o no_o no_o man_n worthy_a than_o another_o so_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v neither_o king_n lord_n knight_n nor_o gentleman_n but_o a_o parity_n of_o degree_n among_o all_o these_o holy_a brethren_n and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o taste_n of_o what_o they_o mean_v as_o the_o lord_n concurrence_n with_o they_o enable_v they_o to_o devour_v the_o king_n power_n so_o they_o have_v since_o with_o great_a justice_n prevail_v with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o to_o swallow_v up_o the_o lord_n power_n and_o have_v most_o fair_o invade_v their_o privilege_n when_o they_o question_v particular_a member_n 5.16_o member_n as_o my_o lord_n duke_n and_o my_o lord_n digbie_n 8._o they_o will_v have_v no_o man_n to_o pray_v for_o temporal_a thing_n matth._n 33_o 34._o matth._n 6.11_o 9_o not_o to_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n 10._o not_o to_o say_v god_n speed_v you_o 2_o john_n 10.11_o 12_o not_o to_o pray_v for_o the_o malignant_n 1_o john_n 5.16_o for_o word_n speak_v in_o that_o house_n and_o then_o the_o whole_a house_n when_o they_o bring_v up_o and_o countenance_v a_o mutinous_a and_o seditious_a petition_n which_o demand_v the_o name_n of_o those_o lord_n that_o consent_v not_o with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o that_o house_n have_v twice_o deny_v 8._o because_o our_o saviour_n say_v seek_v you_o first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o the_o righteousness_n thereof_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v meat_n drink_z and_o clothes_n and_o all_o other_o earthly_a thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d shall_v be_v cast_v unto_o you_o and_o again_o be_v not_o careful_a for_o to_o morrow_n they_o teach_v their_o proselyte_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o pray_v by_o any_o mean_n for_o any_o of_o these_o thing_n whereas_o christ_n bid_v we_o to_o say_v give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n 9_o they_o can_v endure_v to_o say_v the_o lord_n prayer_n for_o that_o be_v a_o popish_a superstition_n but_o their_o prayer_n must_v be_v all_o tautology_n and_o a_o circular_a repetition_n of_o their_o own_o indigested_a invention_n 10._o you_o must_v not_o say_v god_n speed_v you_o to_o any_o neighbour_n or_o any_o traveller_n lest_o he_o intend_v some_o evil_a work_n and_o then_o you_o shall_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o sin_n 11._o they_o will_v not_o allow_v any_o of_o their_o disciple_n to_o pray_v for_o any_o of_o the_o reprobate_n and_o therefore_o they_o do_v exceed_o blame_v we_o and_o tear_v our_o liturgy_n because_o we_o say_v that_o it_o may_v please_v thou_o to_o have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o man_n 12._o because_o christ_n say_v call_v no_o man_n father_n on_o earth_n for_o one_o be_v your_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o child_n must_v not_o call_v he_o that_o beget_v he_o and_o nurse_v he_o his_o father_n nor_o kneel_v unto_o he_o to_o ask_v he_o blessing_n nor_o perform_v many_o other_o such_o duty_n which_o the_o lord_n require_v and_o the_o church_n instruct_v her_o child_n to_o do_v to_o this_o very_a day_n and_o this_o foolish_a doctrine_n of_o call_v no_o man_n father_n no_o man_n master_n or_o lord_n and_o the_o like_a in_o their_o sense_n because_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o divine_a meaning_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o such_o undutifulnesse_n and_o untowardness_n such_o contempt_n of_o superior_n and_o such_o rebellion_n to_o authority_n as_o be_v beyond_o expression_n when_o as_o by_o their_o disloyalty_n be_v thus_o breed_v up_o in_o they_o from_o their_o cradle_n they_o first_o despise_v their_o father_n than_o their_o teacher_n than_o their_o king_n and_o then_o god_n himself_o chap._n ix_o show_v three_o other_o special_a point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o brownist_n and_o anabaptist_n of_o this_o kingdom_n do_v teach_v 13._o because_o they_o can_v find_v no_o text_n in_o scripture_n when_o as_o the_o alcoran_n be_v not_o so_o impudent_o hellish_a as_o to_o justify_v the_o action_n for_o to_o warrant_v man_n to_o absolve_v our_o conscience_n from_o any_o oath_n that_o we_o have_v voluntary_o take_v for_o the_o performance_n of_o any_o business_n i_o can_v say_v that_o they_o do_v profess_o teach_v but_o i_o do_v hear_v they_o do_v usual_o practice_v this_o most_o damnable_a sin_n as_o that_o master_n martial_n and_o master_n case_n do_v absolve_v the_o soldier_n take_v at_o brainceford_n from_o their_o oath_n which_o they_o take_v never_o to_o bear_v arm_n against_o his_o majesty_n which_o be_v a_o sin_n destructive_a both_o to_o body_n and_o soul_n when_o their_o perjury_n add_v to_o their_o treason_n make_v they_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o they_o be_v before_o and_o if_o they_o be_v take_v again_o they_o can_v expect_v nothing_o but_o their_o just_a deserve_a death_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v admire_v that_o any_o man_n can_v challenge_v the_o name_n of_o a_o divine_a which_o do_v either_o preach_v or_o practice_v a_o point_n so_o devilish_a 1.12_o 14._o they_o think_v sacrilege_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n act_n 20.34_o 1_o thes_n 2.9_o 1_o cor._n 1.12_o 14._o because_o saint_n paul_n say_v these_o hand_n have_v minister_v to_o my_o necessity_n and_o to_o they_o that_o be_v with_o i_o and_o again_o labour_v night_n and_o day_n because_o we_o will_v not_o be_v chargeable_a to_o any_o of_o you_o we_o preach_v unto_o you_o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n and_o because_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n be_v fisherman_n tradesman_n or_o professor_n of_o some_o science_n either_o liberal_a or_o mechanic_n as_o saint_n luke_n be_v a_o physician_n joseph_n a_o carpenter_n and_o the_o like_a who_o do_v live_v by_o their_o manual_a craft_n and_o be_v chargeable_a to_o none_o of_o their_o people_n but_o seek_v they_o and_o not_o they_o to_o win_v their_o soul_n to_o god_n and_o not_o their_o money_n unto_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o think_v it_o no_o robbery_n to_o take_v away_o all_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o sacrilege_n to_o rob_v the_o clergy_n of_o all_o the_o mean_n they_o have_v because_o they_o shall_v either_o labour_n for_o their_o live_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v or_o live_v upon_o the_o people_n alm_n as_o many_o poor_a minister_n do_v to_o the_o utter_a undo_n of_o many_o soul_n in_o many_o distress_a and_o most_o miserable_a church_n but_o because_o this_o revenue_n of_o
now_o alive_a to_o dispose_v of_o their_o beneficence_n 2._o they_o be_v most_o injurious_a to_o the_o king_n who_o be_v wise_a as_o a_o angel_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o hold_v this_o sacrilege_n odious_a to_o his_o princely_a heart_n that_o will_v seek_v to_o enrich_v his_o crown_n with_o that_o which_o will_v shake_v it_o on_o his_o head_n and_o endanger_v all_o his_o posterity_n to_o such_o fearful_a judgement_n as_o his_o progenitour_n have_v denounce_v and_o god_n have_v execute_v upon_o many_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o like_a sin_n for_o as_o moses_n pray_v against_o the_o sacrilegious_a enemy_n of_o levi_n 33.11_o deut._n 33.11_o smite_v through_o the_o loin_n of_o they_o that_o rise_v against_o he_o and_o of_o they_o that_o hate_v he_o that_o they_o rise_v not_o again_o so_o we_o find_v that_o many_o ancient_a family_n have_v by_o the_o statute_n of_o dissolution_n take_v some_o of_o the_o land_n and_o tithe_n of_o the_o church_n into_o their_o possession_n have_v find_v the_o same_o like_o the_o gold_n of_o tholous_a glyph_n pierius_n in_o high_a glyph_n or_o the_o eagle_n feather_n pernitiosa_fw-la potentia_fw-la that_o will_v consume_v all_o the_o feather_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v mingle_v who_o so_o be_v wise_a will_v consider_v these_o thing_n and_o will_v not_o to_o satisfy_v these_o anabaptistical_n dregs_n of_o the_o people_n hist_o aelian_a lib._n 5._o cap_n 15._o var._n hist_o and_o the_o enemy_n of_o all_o christian_a religion_n sacrilegious_o take_v away_o with_o aelian_n boy_n the_o golden_a plate_n from_o diana_n crown_n the_o land_n and_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n but_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n they_o will_v do_v that_o which_o become_v saint_n and_o suffer_v the_o dead_a to_o enjoy_v their_o own_o will_n in_o that_o wherein_o they_o put_v they_o to_o to_o no_o charge_n and_o if_o they_o do_v intend_v to_o promote_v god_n service_n they_o will_v not_o rob_v saint_n peter_n to_o pay_v saint_n paul_n but_o will_v rather_o say_v with_o holy_a david_n god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n of_o that_o which_o cost_v i_o nothing_o 15._o as_o any_o wooden_a preacher_n like_o jeroboam_n priest_n the_o foece_n plebis_fw-la scarce_o worthy_a to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o groom_n of_o their_o stable_n or_o such_o humi_fw-la serpent_n poor_a abject_n as_o job_n speak_v of_o 30.8_o job_n 30.8_o the_o son_n of_o villain_n and_o bondman_n more_o vile_a than_o the_o earth_n they_o crawl_v upon_o be_v fit_a enough_o to_o be_v their_o teacher_n and_o beggarly_a pensioner_n so_o any_o place_n a_o thatch_a barn_n a_o litter_v stable_a or_o a_o ample_a cowhouse_n man_n what_o prayer_n and_o sermon_n please_v these_o man_n be_v think_v by_o these_o to_o be_v very_o fair_a and_o fit_a to_o be_v the_o house_n of_o he_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o a_o stable_a and_o lay_v in_o a_o manger_n and_o any_o service_n prayer_n without_o sense_n such_o as_o our_o saviour_n blame_v and_o preach_v without_o learning_n without_o truth_n such_o as_o their_o enthusiast_n conceive_v in_o illa_fw-la horâ_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la in_o buccam_fw-la venerit_fw-la without_o any_o further_a study_n or_o meditation_n be_v justify_v to_o be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n witness_v the_o author_n of_o one_o argument_n more_o against_o the_o cavalier_n where_o that_o great_a scholar_n in_o his_o own_o opinion_n rail_v against_o our_o grave_a bishop_n and_o most_o impudent_o reproach_v a_o very_a reverend_a man_n of_o know_a worth_n and_o great_a learning_n by_o the_o scandalous_a epithet_n of_o the_o ceremonious_a master_n of_o balliol_n college_n doctor_n laurence_n who_o for_o a_o most_o learned_a and_o pious_a sermon_n preach_v before_o the_o king_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o exodus_fw-la put_v off_o thy_o shoe_n from_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n whereon_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n he_o do_v just_a like_o the_o elder_a son_n of_o his_o dear_a father_n the_o devil_n as_o tertullian_n call_v hermogenes_n primogenitum_fw-la diaboli_fw-la most_o false_o and_o shameless_o charge_v he_o with_o the_o wear_n of_o consecrate_a slipper_n which_o be_v never_o do_v but_o be_v one_o of_o those_o scurrilous_a invent_a imputation_n of_o this_o malicious_a accuser_n of_o his_o brethren_n now_o throw_v at_o he_o who_o shoe_n either_o for_o learning_n or_o piety_n i_o be_o sure_a this_o ramble_a arguist_n and_o rail_a rabsheka_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o bear_v and_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o our_o church_n though_o the_o holy_a prophet_n which_o be_v a_o man_n according_a to_o god_n own_o heart_n 5._o music_n ever_o use_v in_o the_o church_n psal_n 147.1_o 149.3_o ps_n 150.3_o 4_o 5._o praise_v god_n in_o the_o beauty_n of_o holiness_n upon_o all_o the_o best_a instrument_n of_o music_n and_o command_v we_o as_o well_o in_o the_o grammatical_a sense_n as_o in_o the_o mystical_a sense_n to_o sing_v praise_n unto_o our_o god_n with_o tabret_n and_o harp_n to_o praise_v he_o in_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o trumpet_n in_o the_o cymbal_n and_o dance_n upon_o the_o well-tuned_a cymbal_n and_o upon_o the_o loud_a cymbal_n yet_o this_o zealous_a organe-mastix_a give_v we_o none_o other_o title_n than_o cathedral_n roarer_n and_o squeaker_n and_o good_a reason_n it_o be_v he_o shall_v be_v very_o angry_a with_o roar_v and_o squeak_v in_o church_n 14._o pag._n 14._o for_o that_o have_v be_v possess_v of_o a_o very_a competent_a live_n with_o cure_n of_o soul_n these_o four_o or_o five_o year_n together_o if_o i_o be_o not_o mistake_v in_o the_o author_n he_o never_o yet_o either_o read_v or_o preach_v in_o that_o or_o any_o other_o church_n so_o necessary_a be_v nonresidence_n and_o so_o useful_a be_v dumb_a dog_n when_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o snarl_v and_o bark_v against_o government_n and_o religion_n but_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o i_o that_o such_o a_o divine_a harmony_n musica_fw-la music_n how_o useful_a theodoric_n epist_n l._n 2._o plutarch_n de_fw-fr musica_fw-la which_o have_v make_v other_o sober_a shall_v make_v this_o spawn_n of_o the_o red_a dragon_n mad_a for_o we_o know_v some_o lawgiver_n command_v child_n to_o be_v teach_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o the_o grave_n compose_v tone_n of_o the_o doric_a way_n ad_fw-la corda_fw-la fera_fw-fr demulcenda_fw-la to_o soften_v the_o fierceness_n of_o their_o disposition_n and_o ad_fw-la montis_fw-la fervorem_fw-la temperandum_fw-la to_o cool_v and_o allay_v the_o heat_n and_o distemper_n of_o their_o mind_n as_o achilles_n be_v appease_v in_o homer_n and_o theodosius_n be_v draw_v to_o commiseration_n luctuoso_fw-la carmine_fw-la by_o a_o sad_a poem_n sing_v to_o he_o at_o supper_n 43._o niceph._n lib._n 12_o cap._n 43._o when_o he_o intend_v the_o utter_a destruction_n of_o antioch_n and_o the_o scripture_n testify_v the_o like_a effect_n of_o david_n harp_n in_o king_n saul_n yet_o all_o this_o sweet_a and_o hallow_a air_n which_o ravish_v devout_a soul_n have_v only_o fill_v this_o envious_a malignant_a with_o nasty_a wind_n and_o stink_a expression_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n himself_o exod._n 3.5_o and_o against_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o divine_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o all_o saint_n à_fw-la primordiis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la from_o the_o first_o birth_n of_o god_n church_n 15.18_o pag._n 15.18_o he_o most_o ignorant_o deni_v any_o place_n to_o be_v holy_a than_o another_o which_o make_v i_o afraid_a that_o heaven_n with_o this_o man_n and_o his_o faction_n be_v deem_v no_o holy_a than_o hell_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n no_o holy_a than_o monday_n no_o more_o than_o they_o hold_v the_o church_n holy_a than_o their_o b●rns_n or_o the_o holy_a priest_n though_o he_o be_v aaron_n himself_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o lord_n holy_a than_o the_o profane_v worldling_n for_o i_o find_v no_o differnce_n that_o they_o make_v either_o of_o person_n time_n or_o place_n but_o such_o a_o commixtion_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o if_o they_o intend_v to_o reduce_v and_o bring_v the_o whole_a world_n into_o that_o confuse_a chaos_n which_o god_n first_o create_v before_o he_o dispose_v the_o part_n thereof_o into_o their_o several_a station_n but_o i_o be_o loath_a to_o spend_v any_o more_o time_n about_o this_o ignorant_a argument_n that_o be_v as_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o write_n be_v as_o full_a of_o rail_v and_o unsavoury_a speech_n as_o any_o mortal_a pen_n can_v diffuse_v therefore_o i_o leave_v he_o to_o do_v with_o his_o heart_n and_o mouth_n as_o that_o morussian_a cabares_n whereof_o he_o speak_v do_v with_o those_o church_n which_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n have_v defile_v thus_o you_o have_v some_o and_o i_o may_v add_v here_o abundance_n more_o of_o their_o absurd_a and_o impious_a doctrine_n which_o their_o ignorant_a simplicity_n produce_v and_o their_o furious_a zeal_n publish_v out_o of_o misinterpret_v scripture_n not_o that_o
you_o to_o be_v wrest_v out_o of_o your_o hand_n by_o these_o uncircumcised_a philistine_n these_o ungracious_a rebel_n and_o the_o vessel_n of_o god_n wrath_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unless_o they_o do_v most_o speedy_o repent_v for_o if_o the_o unrighteous_a will_v be_v unrighteous_a still_o and_o our_o wickedness_n provoke_v god_n to_o bring_v our_o land_n to_o desolation_n your_o majesty_n stand_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o for_o the_o right_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n of_o his_o son_n be_v absolve_v from_o all_o blame_n and_o all_o the_o blood_n that_o shall_v be_v spill_v and_o the_o oppression_n insolence_n and_o abomination_n that_o be_v perpetrate_v shall_v be_v require_v at_o the_o hand_n and_o revenge_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o these_o detest_a rebel_n you_o be_v and_o aught_o in_o the_o truth_n of_o case_n of_o conscience_n to_o be_v inform_v by_o your_o divine_n and_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o herein_o they_o will_v all_o subscribe_v that_o god_n will_v undoubted_o assist_v you_o and_o arise_v in_o his_o good_a time_n to_o maintain_v his_o own_o cause_n and_o by_o this_o war_n that_o be_v so_o undutiful_o so_o unjust_o make_v against_o your_o majesty_n so_o giantlike_a fight_v against_o heaven_n to_o overthrow_v the_o true_a church_n you_o shall_v be_v glorious_a like_o king_n david_n that_o be_v a_o man_n of_o war_n who_o dear_a son_n raise_v a_o dangerous_a rebellion_n against_o he_o and_o in_o who_o reign_n so_o much_o blood_n be_v spill_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o these_o distemper_n in_o his_o dominion_n he_o be_v a_o man_n according_a to_o god_n own_o heart_n especial_o because_o that_o from_o α_n to_o ω_fw-gr temple_n ω_fw-gr as_o in_o the_o beginning_n by_o reduce_v the_o ark_n from_o the_o philistine_n throughout_o the_o midst_n by_o settle_v the_o service_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n &_o in_o the_o end_n by_o his_o resolution_n to_o build_v &_o leave_v such_o a_o treasure_n for_o the_o erect_n of_o the_o temple_n the_o beginning_n of_o his_o reign_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n his_o chief_a endeavour_n be_v to_o promote_v the_o service_n and_o protect_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n the_o minister_n of_o god_n church_n god_n almighty_a so_o continue_v your_o majesty_n bless_v you_o and_o protect_v you_o in_o all_o your_o way_n your_o virtuous_a pious_a queen_n and_o all_o your_o royal_a progeny_n which_o be_v the_o daily_a prayer_n of_o the_o most_o faithful_a to_o your_o majesty_n gryffith_n ossory_n the_o right_n of_o king_n both_o in_o church_n &_o state_n and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o this_o pretend_a parliament_n manifest_v and_o prove_v chap._n i._n show_n who_o be_v the_o fit_a to_o set_v down_o the_o right_n which_o god_n grant_v unto_o king_n what_o cause_v man_n to_o rebel_v the_o part_n considerable_a in_o s._n peter_n word_n 1_o pet._n two_o 17._o in_o fine_a how_o king_n honour_v the_o clergy_n the_o fair_a but_o most_o false_a pretence_n of_o the_o refractory_a faction_n what_o they_o chief_o aim_v at_o and_o their_o malice_n to_o episcopacy_n and_o royalty_n it_o be_v not_o unwise_o say_v by_o ocham_n that_o great_a scholeman_n to_o a_o great_a emperor_n which_o m._n luther_n say_v also_o to_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n tu_fw-la protege_fw-la i_o gladio_fw-la 4._o guliel_n ocham_n ludou._n 4._o &_o ego_fw-la defendam_fw-la te_fw-la calamo_fw-la do_v you_o defend_v i_o with_o your_o sword_n and_o i_o will_v maintain_v your_o right_n with_o my_o pen_n for_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o sword_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o king_n and_o his_o hand_n which_o bear_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o vain_a 4_o rom._n 13._o v._n 4_o know_v how_o to_o use_v the_o sword_n better_o than_o the_o preacher_n and_o the_o king_n may_v better_o make_v good_a his_o right_n by_o the_o sword_n then_o by_o the_o pen_n which_o have_v once_o blot_v his_o paper_n with_o mistake_n and_o concession_n more_o than_o due_a though_o they_o shall_v be_v never_o so_o small_a if_o grant_v further_o than_o the_o truth_n will_v permit_v as_o i_o fear_v some_o have_v do_v in_o some_o particular_n yet_o they_o can_v so_o easy_o be_v scrape_v away_o by_o the_o sharp_a sword_n and_o god_n order_v the_o divine_a tongue_n and_o learned_a scribe_n to_o be_v the_o pen_n of_o a_o ready_a writer_n and_o thereby_o to_o display_v the_o duty_n and_o to_o justify_v the_o right_n of_o king_n and_o if_o they_o fail_v in_o either_o part_n king_n the_o divine_a best_a to_o set_v down_o the_o right_n of_o king_n the_o king_n need_v neither_o to_o perform_v what_o undue_a office_n they_o impose_v upon_o he_o nor_o to_o let_v pass_v those_o just_a honour_n they_o omit_v to_o yield_v unto_o he_o but_o he_o may_v just_o claim_v his_o due_a right_n and_o either_o retain_v they_o or_o regain_v they_o by_o his_o sword_n which_o the_o scribe_n either_o wilful_o omit_v or_o ignorant_o neglect_v to_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o or_o else_o malicious_o endeavour_v as_o the_o most_o impudent_a and_o rebellious_a sectary_n of_o our_o time_n have_v most_o virulent_o do_v to_o abstract_n they_o from_o he_o and_o see_v the_o crown_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o every_o christian_a king_n and_o the_o sceptre_n of_o government_n be_v put_v into_o his_o hand_n by_o a_o threefold_a law_n 1._o of_o nature_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o 2._o of_o the_o nation_n that_o he_o rule_v over_o 3._o of_o god_n that_o be_v over_o all_o as_o 119._o every_o christian_a king_n establish_v by_o a_o threefold_a law_n psal_n 119._o 1._o nature_n teach_v every_o king_n to_o govern_v his_o people_n according_a to_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o honesty_n and_o justice_n 2._o the_o politic_a constitution_n of_o every_o several_a state_n and_o particular_a kingdom_n show_v how_o they_o will_v have_v their_o government_n to_o be_v administer_v 3._o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v a_o undefiled_a law_n and_o do_v infallible_o set_v down_o what_o duty_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v and_o what_o right_n be_v to_o be_v yield_v to_o every_o king_n 15.4_o to_o what_o end_n the_o story_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o judah_n be_v write_v rom._n 15.4_o for_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v write_v of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n and_o judah_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o only_o write_v for_o those_o king_n and_o the_o government_n of_o that_o one_o nation_n but_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v they_o be_v write_v for_o our_o learning_n that_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n may_v know_v thereby_o how_o to_o govern_v and_o all_o subject_n may_v in_o like_a manner_n by_o this_o impartial_a and_o most_o perfect_a rule_n understand_v how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o all_o obedience_n and_o loyalty_n towards_o their_o king_n and_o governor_n for_o he_o that_o make_v man_n know_v he_o have_v be_v better_o unmake_v than_o leave_v without_o a_o government_n therefore_o as_o he_o ordain_v those_o law_n whereby_o we_o shall_v live_v and_o set_v down_o those_o truth_n that_o we_o shall_v believe_v so_o he_o settle_v creation_n the_o ordination_n of_o our_o government_n as_o beneficial_a as_o our_o creation_n and_o ordain_v that_o government_n whereby_o all_o man_n in_o all_o nation_n shall_v be_v guide_v and_o govern_v as_o know_v full_a well_o that_o we_o neither_o will_v or_o can_v do_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n right_a unless_o he_o himself_o do_v set_v down_o the_o same_o for_o we_o therefore_o though_o the_o frowardness_n of_o our_o nature_n will_v neither_o yield_v to_o live_v according_a to_o that_o law_n nor_o believe_v according_a to_o that_o rule_n nor_o be_v govern_v according_a to_o that_o divine_a ordinance_n which_o god_n have_v prescribe_v for_o we_o in_o his_o word_n yet_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o he_o leave_v we_o not_o without_o a_o perfect_a rule_n and_o direction_n for_o each_o one_o of_o these_o our_o faith_n our_o life_n and_o our_o government_n without_o which_o government_n we_o can_v neither_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o our_o life_n nor_o scarce_o reap_v the_o fruit_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o because_o it_o be_v as_o good_a to_o leave_v we_o without_o rule_n uncertain_a unwritten_a thing_n most_o uncertain_a and_o without_o law_n as_o to_o live_v by_o unwritten_a law_n which_o in_o the_o vastness_n of_o this_o world_n will_v be_v soon_o alter_v corrupt_a and_o obliterated_a therefore_o god_n have_v write_v down_o all_o these_o thing_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o though_o they_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o government_n both_o of_o their_o church_n and_o kingdom_n yet_o be_v they_o leave_v with_o they_o to_o be_v communicate_v for_o the_o use_n and_o benefit_n of_o all_o other_o nation_n god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o the_o jew_n only_o 29._o rom._n 3_o 29._o but_o of_o the_o gentile_n also_o
parte_fw-la rex_fw-la praeesset_fw-la so_o master_n harding_n say_v that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n in_o itself_o be_v all_o one_o every_o where_o not_o only_o among_o the_o christian_a prince_n but_o also_o among_o the_o heathen_a so_o that_o a_o christian_a king_n have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v in_o decide_v church_n matter_n or_o meddle_v with_o any_o point_n of_o religion_n than_o a_o heathen_a and_o so_o fekenham_n and_o all_o the_o brood_n of_o jesuit_n do_v with_o all_o violence_n and_o virulency_n labour_v to_o disprove_v the_o prince_n authority_n and_o supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o the_o point_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o to_o transfer_v the_o same_o whole_o unto_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o cardinal_n neither_o do_v i_o wonder_v so_o much_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v so_o universal_o gain_v and_o so_o long_o continue_v this_o power_n and_o retain_v this_o government_n from_o the_o right_a owner_n shall_v employ_v all_o his_o hierarchy_n to_o maintain_v that_o usurp_a authority_n which_o he_o hold_v with_o so_o much_o advantage_n to_o his_o episcopal_a see_n though_o with_o no_o small_a prejudice_n to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o emperor_n be_v busy_v with_o other_o affair_n and_o leave_v this_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n to_o the_o bishop_n the_o bishop_n to_o their_o suffragans_fw-la and_o the_o suffragans_fw-la to_o the_o monk_n who_o authority_n be_v little_a their_o knowledge_n less_o and_o their_o honesty_n lest_o of_o all_o all_o thing_n be_v rule_v with_o great_a corruption_n and_o less_o truth_n than_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o long_o as_o possible_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o possess_v it_o but_o at_o last_o when_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n shine_v and_o christian_a prince_n have_v the_o leisure_n to_o look_v and_o the_o heart_n to_o take_v hold_n upon_o their_o right_n the_o learned_a man_n oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o pope_n usurp_a jurisdiction_n have_v sound_o prove_v the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o christian_a king_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o not_o only_o in_o other_o kingdom_n but_o also_o here_o in_o england_n this_o power_n be_v annex_v by_o divers_a law_n unto_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o the_o lawful_a right_n of_o the_o king_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v that_o reverend_a archbishop_n bancroft_n have_v it_o not_o be_v that_o new_a adversary_n do_v arise_v 251._o survey_v of_o discip_n c._n 22._o p._n 251._o and_o oppose_v themselves_o in_o this_o matter_n the_o papist_n before_o this_o time_n have_v be_v utter_o subdue_v for_o the_o devil_n see_v himself_o so_o like_a to_o lose_v the_o field_n stir_v up_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o reformation_n a_o flock_n of_o violent_a and_o seditious_a man_n reformation_n how_o the_o devil_n raise_v instrument_n to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n that_o pretend_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o hate_n to_o popery_n have_v notwithstanding_o join_v themselves_o like_o sampson_n fox_n with_o the_o worst_a of_o papist_n in_o the_o worst_a and_o most_o pernicious_a doctrine_n that_o ever_o papist_n teach_v to_o rob_v king_n of_o their_o sacred_a and_o divine_a right_n and_o to_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o those_o point_n that_o do_v most_o special_o concern_v her_o government_n and_o governor_n and_o though_o in_o the_o fury_n of_o their_o wild_a zeal_n they_o do_v no_o less_o malicious_o then_o false_o cast_v upon_o the_o sound_a protestant_n the_o aspersion_n of_o popery_n and_o malignancy_n yet_o i_o hope_v to_o make_v it_o plain_a unto_o my_o reader_n that_o themselves_o be_v the_o papist_n indeed_o or_o worse_o than_o papist_n both_o to_o the_o church_n and_o state_n for_o opinion_n 2_o 2._o as_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o all_o the_o school_n of_o the_o jesuit_n do_v most_o stiff_o defend_v this_o usurp_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o as_o i_o say_v puritan_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o puritan_n may_v be_v with_o the_o less_o admiration_n because_o of_o the_o prince_n concession_n and_o their_o own_o long_a possession_n of_o it_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o be_v spring_v up_o of_o late_a a_o certain_a generation_n of_o viper_n the_o brood_n of_o anabaptist_n and_o brownist_n that_o do_v most_o violent_o strive_v not_o to_o detain_v what_o they_o have_v unjust_o obtain_v but_o a_o degree_n far_o worse_o to_o pull_v the_o sword_n out_o of_o their_o prince_n his_o hand_n and_o to_o place_n authority_n on_o they_o which_o have_v neither_o right_n to_o own_o it_o nor_o discretion_n to_o use_v it_o and_o that_o be_v presbytery_n where_o the_o puritan_n place_n the_o authority_n to_o maintain_v religion_n 1_o in_o the_o presbytery_n either_o 1._o a_o consistory_n of_o presbyter_n 2._o a_o parliament_n of_o lay_v man_n for_o 1._o these_o new_a adversary_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o will_v most_o impudent_o take_v away_o from_o christian_a prince_n the_o supreme_a and_o immediate_a authority_n under_o christ_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a calling_n and_o cause_n will_v needs_o place_v the_o same_o in_o themselves_o and_o a_o consistorian_n company_n of_o their_o own_o faction_n a_o whole_a volume_n will_v not_o contain_v their_o absurdity_n falsity_n and_o blasphemy_n that_o they_o have_v utter_v about_o this_o point_n i_o will_v only_o give_v you_o a_o taste_n of_o what_o some_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o have_v belch_v forth_o against_o the_o divine_a truth_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o sacred_a majesty_n of_o king_n master_n calvin_n a_o man_n otherwise_o of_o much_o worth_n 7._o calvin_n in_o amos_n cap._n 7._o and_o worthy_a to_o be_v honour_v yet_o in_o this_o point_n transport_v with_o his_o own_o passion_n call_v those_o blasphemer_n that_o do_v call_v king_n henry_n the_o eight_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o this_o church_n of_o england_n and_o stapleton_n say_v that_o he_o handle_v the_o king_n himself_o with_o such_o villainy_n and_o with_o so_o spiteful_a word_n 22._o stapl._n count_v horn._n l._n 1._o p._n 22._o as_o he_o never_o handle_v the_o pope_n more_o spiteful_o and_o all_o for_o this_o title_n of_o supremacy_n in_o church_n cause_n and_o in_o his_o fifty_o four_o epistle_n to_o myconius_n he_o term_v they_o profane_a spirit_n and_o mad_a man_n that_o persuade_v the_o magistrate_n of_o geneva_n not_o to_o deprive_v themselves_o of_o that_o authority_n which_o god_n have_v give_v they_o viretus_fw-la be_v more_o virulent_a pope_n how_o viretus_fw-la will_v prove_v the_o temporal_a pope_n as_o he_o call_v the_o king_n worse_o than_o the_o spiritual_a pope_n for_o he_o resemble_v they_o not_o to_o mad_a man_n as_o calvin_n do_v but_o to_o white_a devil_n because_o they_o stand_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o he_o say_v they_o be_v false_a christian_n though_o they_o cover_v themselves_o with_o the_o cloak_n of_o the_o gospel_n affirm_v that_o the_o put_n of_o all_o authority_n and_o power_n into_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n hand_n and_o make_v they_o master_n of_o the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o change_n of_o the_o popedom_n from_o the_o spiritual_a pope_n into_o a_o temporal_a pope_n who_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v will_v prove_v worss_n and_o more_o tyrannous_a than_o the_o spiritual_a pope_n which_o he_o labour_v to_o confirm_v by_o these_o three_o reason_n reason_n 1_o 1._o because_o the_o spiritual_a pope_n have_v not_o the_o sword_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o punish_v man_n with_o death_n but_o be_v fain_o to_o crave_v the_o aid_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n which_o the_o temporal_a pope_n need_v not_o do_v reason_n 2_o 2._o because_o the_o old_a spiritual_a pope_n have_v some_o regard_n in_o their_o deal_n of_o council_n synod_n and_o ancient_a canon_n but_o the_o new_a secular_a pope_n will_v do_v what_o they_o listen_v without_o respect_n of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a order_n be_v it_o right_n or_o wrong_n reason_n 3_o 3._o because_o the_o romish_a pope_n be_v most_o common_o very_o learned_a but_o it_o happen_v oftentimes_o that_o the_o regal_a pope_n have_v neither_o learning_n nor_o knowledge_n in_o divine_a matter_n and_o yet_o these_o shall_v be_v they_o that_o shall_v command_v minister_n and_o and_o preacher_n what_o they_o listen_v and_o to_o make_v this_o assertion_n good_a he_o affirm_v that_o he_o see_v in_o some_o place_n some_o christian_a prince_n under_o the_o title_n of_o reformation_n to_o have_v in_o ten_o or_o twenty_o year_n usurp_v more_o tyranny_n over_o the_o church_n in_o their_o dominion_n than_o ever_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n do_v in_o six_o hundred_o year_n all_o which_o reason_n be_v but_o mere_a foppery_n blow_v up_o by_o the_o black_a devil_n to_o blast_v the_o beauty_n of_o this_o truth_n for_o we_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o abuse_n of_o any_o prince_n
decay_a state_n when_o moses_n chair_n shall_v be_v set_v in_o the_o parliament_n house_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v never_o sit_v thereon_o therefore_o i_o wish_v that_o the_o ark_n may_v be_v bring_v back_o from_o the_o philistine_n and_o restore_v to_o the_o priest_n to_o be_v place_v in_o shilo_n where_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o that_o the_o care_n of_o the_o ark_n which_o king_n david_n undertake_v may_v not_o be_v take_v out_o of_o his_o hand_n by_o his_o people_n but_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o honour_n of_o that_o service_n which_o god_n have_v impose_v upon_o he_o for_o opinion_n 3_o 3._o as_o nothing_o be_v dear_a to_o understanding_n righteous_a and_o religious_a king_n than_o the_o increase_n and_o maintenance_n of_o true_a religion_n destroy_v of_o the_o orthodox_n quia_fw-la religio_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la potioribus_fw-la reipublicae_fw-la partibus_fw-la ut_fw-la ait_fw-la aristot_n polit._n l._n 7._o c._n 8._o &_o ipsa_fw-la sola_fw-la custodit_fw-la hominum_fw-la inter_fw-la se_fw-la societates_fw-la ut_fw-la ait_fw-la lactant._n de_fw-fr ira_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 12._o peritura_fw-la troja_n perdidit_fw-la primùm_fw-la deos._n therefore_o the_o tyrian_n chain_v their_o god_n lest_o if_o they_o flee_v they_o shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n throughout_o all_o their_o dominion_n so_o they_o have_v at_o all_o time_n employ_v their_o study_n to_o this_o end_n because_o it_o be_v a_o infallible_a maxim_n even_o among_o the_o politician_n that_o the_o prosperity_n of_o any_o kingdom_n flourish_v for_o no_o long_a time_n than_o the_o care_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o prosperity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v maintain_v by_o they_o among_o their_o people_n as_o we_o see_v troy_n be_v soon_o lose_v when_o they_o lose_v their_o palladium_n so_o it_o be_v the_o true_a sign_n of_o a_o decline_a and_o a_o decay_a state_n to_o see_v the_o clergy_n despise_v and_o religion_n disgrace_v and_o therefore_o the_o provision_n for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n the_o public_a enjoy_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o form_n of_o service_n the_o manner_n of_o government_n and_o the_o honour_n and_o maintenance_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v all_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o most_o christian_n king_n which_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n have_v impose_v upon_o he_o for_o the_o happiness_n and_o prosperity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o whosoever_o derive_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o charge_n either_o in_o a_o blind_a obedience_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o the_o jesuit_n do_v or_o out_o of_o their_o too_o much_o zeal_n and_o affection_n to_o a_o new_a consistory_n as_o the_o late_a presbyterian_o do_v or_o to_o a_o lay_v parliament_n as_o our_o upstart_n anabaptist_n and_o brownist_n do_v be_v most_o unjust_a usurper_n of_o the_o king_n right_o which_o be_v not_o only_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o and_o warrant_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v also_o confirm_v to_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o land_n by_o several_a act_n of_o parliament_n to_o have_v the_o supremacy_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o person_n as_o well_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a as_o in_o the_o civil_a government_n which_o be_v so_o they_o be_v exempt_v thereby_o from_o all_o enforcement_n of_o any_o domestical_a or_o foreign_a power_n and_o free_v from_o the_o penalty_n of_o all_o those_o law_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a whereunto_o all_o their_o subject_n clergy_n and_o laity_n 23._o q._n curtius_n de_fw-fr rebus_fw-la alexand._n joh._n beda_n p._n 22_o 23._o and_o all_o inferior_a person_n and_o the_o superior_a nobility_n within_o their_o kingdom_n be_v oblige_v by_o our_o law_n and_o statute_n as_o hereafter_o i_o shall_v more_o full_o declare_v therefore_o it_o behove_v all_o king_n and_o especial_o our_o king_n at_o this_o time_n serious_o to_o consider_v what_o prejudice_n they_o shall_v create_v unto_o themselves_o and_o their_o just_a authority_n if_o they_o shall_v yield_v themselves_o inferior_a to_o their_o subject_n aggregatiuè_fw-la or_o repraesentatiuè_fw-la or_o how_o you_o will_v or_o liable_a to_o the_o penal_a law_n for_o so_o they_o may_v be_v soon_o dethrone_v by_o the_o unstable_a affection_n and_o weak_a judgement_n of_o discontent_a people_n or_o subject_a to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o lay_v elder_n and_o the_o excommunication_n of_o a_o tyrannous_a consistory_n who_o denounce_v he_o 18.17_o matth._n 18.17_o tanquam_fw-la ethnicum_fw-la may_v soon_o add_v 17.15_o deut._n 17.15_o a_o stranger_n shall_v not_o reign_v over_o thou_o and_o so_o depose_v he_o from_o all_o government_n for_o see_v all_o attempt_n be_v most_o violent_a that_o have_v their_o beginning_n and_o strength_n from_o zeal_n unto_o religion_n be_v the_o same_o true_a or_o false_a and_o from_o the_o false_a most_o of_o all_o and_o those_o be_v ever_o the_o most_o dangerous_a who_o ringleader_n be_v most_o base_a as_o the_o servile_a war_n under_o spartacus_n be_v most_o pernicious_a unto_o the_o roman_n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o of_o great_a use_n hand_n how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o king_n to_o retain_v their_o just_a right_n in_o their_o hand_n or_o more_o profitable_a either_o for_o the_o safety_n of_o the_o king_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o quiet_a state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n then_o for_o the_o prince_n the_o king_n to_o retain_v the_o militia_n and_o to_o keep_v that_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o our_o land_n have_v grant_v to_o and_o entail_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o own_o hand_n unclipped_a and_o unshaken_a for_o when_o the_o multitude_n shall_v be_v unbridled_a and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o king_n be_v brandish_v in_o their_o hand_n we_o shall_v assure_o taste_v and_o i_o fear_v in_o too_o great_a a_o measure_n as_o experience_n now_o show_v of_o those_o miserable_a evil_n which_o uncontrolled_a ignorance_n furious_a zeal_n false_a hypocricy_n and_o the_o merciless_a cruelty_n of_o the_o giddy-headed_a people_n and_o discontent_a peer_n shall_v bring_v upon_o we_o and_o our_o prince_n but_o to_o make_v it_o manifest_a unto_o the_o world_n what_o power_n and_o authority_n god_n have_v grant_v unto_o king_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o true_a religion_n we_o find_v they_o the_o worst_a man_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n that_o mislike_v their_o government_n and_o reject_v their_o authority_n and_o we_o see_v those_o church_n most_o happy_a happy_a the_o king_n that_o maintain_v true_a religion_n make_v their_o kingdom_n happy_a and_o those_o kingdom_n most_o flourish_a which_o god_n have_v bless_v with_o religious_a king_n as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o judaea_n make_v it_o plain_a when_o david_n ezechias_n josias_n and_o the_o other_o virtuous_a king_n restore_v the_o religion_n and_o purify_v that_o service_n which_o the_o idolatry_n of_o other_o their_o predecessor_n have_v corrupt_v and_o we_o know_v that_o as_o moses_n 2._o moses_n exod._n 14_o 31_o num._n 12.7_o 8_o deut._n 34.5_o josh_n 1.1_o 2._o so_o king_n be_v call_v the_o servant_n of_o god_n in_o a_o more_o special_a manner_n then_o all_o other_o be_v that_o be_v not_o only_o because_o they_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o especial_o because_o he_o vouchsafe_v to_o use_v their_o service_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o honour_n of_o his_o son_n christ_n here_o on_o earth_n or_o to_o distribute_v their_o duty_n more_o particular_o we_o know_v the_o lord_n exspect_v and_o so_o require_v a_o double_a service_n from_o every_o christian_a king_n 1._o the_o one_o common_a with_o all_o other_o to_o serve_v he_o as_o they_o be_v his_o creature_n and_o christian_n king_n the_o double_a service_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o therefore_o to_o serve_v he_o as_o all_o other_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v 2._o the_o other_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a to_o they_o alone_o to_o serve_v he_o as_o they_o be_v king_n and_o prince_n christian_n 1._o as_o they_o be_v christian_n in_o the_o first_o respect_n they_o be_v no_o more_o privilege_v to_o offend_v then_o other_o man_n but_o they_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o same_o obedience_n of_o god_n law_n and_o be_v oblige_v to_o perform_v as_o many_o virtuous_a action_n and_o to_o abstain_v from_o all_o vice_n as_o well_o as_o any_o other_o of_o their_o subject_n and_o if_o they_o fail_v in_o either_o point_n they_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o same_o account_n and_o shall_v be_v judge_v with_o the_o same_o severity_n as_o the_o mean_a of_o their_o people_n and_o therefore_o be_v wise_a o_o you_o king_n be_v learned_a you_o that_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n 2.10_o psal_n 2.10_o serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n and_o rejoice_v unto_o he_o with_o reverence_n for_o with_o god_n there_o be_v no_o respect_n of_o person_n but_o
true_a religion_n and_o to_o suppress_v all_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o so_o according_o we_o find_v the_o good_a emperor_n and_o king_n have_v ever_o do_v 3_o the_o good_a emperor_n have_v make_v law_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n euseb_n in_o vita_fw-la constant_n l._n 2._o &_o 3_o for_o constantine_n cause_v the_o idolatrous_a religion_n to_o be_v suppress_v and_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v preach_v and_o plant_v among_o his_o people_n and_o make_v many_o wholesome_a law_n and_o godly_a constitution_n to_o restrain_v the_o sacrifice_a unto_o idol_n and_o all_o other_o devilish_a and_o superstitious_a south-saying_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n to_o be_v right_o administer_v in_o every_o place_n say_v eusebius_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o the_o same_o constantine_n give_v injunction_n to_o the_o chief_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v make_v special_a supplication_n to_o god_n for_o he_o and_o he_o enjoin_v all_o his_o subject_n that_o they_o shall_v keep_v holy_a certain_a day_n dedicate_v to_o christ_n and_o the_o sabbath_n or_o saturday_n which_o be_v then_o wont_a to_o be_v keep_v holy_a and_o as_o yet_o not_o abrogate_a by_o any_o law_n among_o the_o christian_n he_o give_v a_o law_n to_o the_o ruler_n of_o every_o nation_n that_o they_o shall_v celebrate_v the_o sunday_n or_o the_o lord_n day_n in_o like_a sort_n 18._o idem_fw-la de_fw-la vita_fw-la constant_n l._n 1._o &_o 3_o &_o 4._o c._n 18._o and_o so_o for_o the_o day_n that_o be_v dedicate_v to_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o martyr_n and_o other_o festival_n time_n and_o all_o such_o thing_n be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o emperor_n nicephorus_n write_v of_o the_o excellent_a virtue_n of_o andronicus_n son_n to_o immanuel_n palaeologus_n and_o compare_v he_o to_o constantine_n the_o great_a say_v hist_o niceph._n in_o prafation_n eccles_n hist_o thou_o have_v restore_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v trouble_v with_o new_a opinion_n to_o the_o old_a state_n thou_o have_v banish_v all_o unlawful_a and_o impure_a doctrine_n thou_o have_v establish_v the_o truth_n and_o have_v make_v law_n and_o constitution_n for_o the_o same_o sozomen_n speak_v of_o constantine_n son_n say_v 17._o sozomenus_n l_o 3._o c._n 17._o the_o prince_n also_o concur_v to_o the_o increase_n of_o these_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d show_v their_o good_a affection_n to_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o their_o father_n do_v and_o honour_v the_o clergy_n their_o servant_n with_o singular_a promotion_n and_o immunity_n both_o confirm_v their_o father_n law_n and_o make_v also_o new_a law_n of_o their_o own_o against_o such_o as_o go_v about_o to_o sacrifice_n and_o to_o worship_v idol_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n fall_v to_o the_o greekish_a or_o heathenish_a superstition_n theodoret_n tell_v we_o that_o valentinian_n at_o the_o synod_n in_o illirico_n do_v not_o only_o confirm_v the_o true_a faith_n by_o his_o royal_a assent_n but_o make_v also_o many_o godly_a and_o sharp_a law_n as_o well_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n his_o doctrine_n as_o also_o touch_v many_o other_o cause_v ecclesiastical_a and_o as_o ratify_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 7._o theodor._n l._n c._n 5_o 6_o &_o 7._o he_o send_v abroad_o to_o they_o that_o doubt_v thereof_o honorius_n at_o the_o request_n of_o boniface_n the_o first_o make_v a_o law_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v siduo_fw-la distinct_a 79._o siduo_fw-la when_o two_o pope_n be_v choose_v at_o once_o by_o the_o indiscretion_n of_o the_o elector_n martianus_n also_o make_v a_o statute_n to_o cut_v off_o and_o put_v away_o all_o manner_n of_o contention_n about_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n the_o emperor_n justinus_n make_v a_o law_n that_o the_o church_n of_o heretic_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o catholic_a religion_n say_v martinus_n poenitentiarius_fw-la and_o who_o know_v not_o of_o the_o many_o law_n and_o decree_n that_o justinian_n make_v in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o constitution_n collect_v in_o the_o code_n of_o justinian_n the_o first_o 13_o title_n be_v all_o fill_v with_o law_n for_o to_o rule_v the_o church_n where_o it_o forbid_v the_o bishop_n to_o reiterate_v baptism_n to_o paint_v 6._o l._n 1._o tit_n 5._o l._n 1._o tit_n 7._o novel_a 123._o c._n 10._o novel_a 58._o novel_a 137._o c._n 6._o or_o grave_n on_o earth_n the_o image_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o in_o the_o novel_n the_o emperor_n ordain_v law_n of_o the_o creation_n and_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n that_o synod_n shall_v be_v annual_o hold_v that_o the_o holy_a mystery_n shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v in_o private_a house_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v speak_v alond_n when_o they_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o the_o holy_a bible_n shall_v be_v translate_v into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o the_o like_a and_o not_o only_o these_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o godly_a emperor_n that_o succeed_v they_o but_o also_o ariamirus_n wambanus_n richaredus_n and_o divers_a other_o king_n of_o spain_n do_v in_o like_a manner_n and_o charlemaigne_n who_o approve_v not_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o greekish_a synod_n write_v a_o book_n against_o the_o same_o image_n same_o entitle_v a_o treatise_n of_o charlemaigne_n against_o the_o greekish_a synod_n touch_v image_n whereby_o the_o king_n maintain_v himself_o in_o possession_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o church_n say_v johannes_n beda_n of_o which_o law_n there_o be_v many_o in_o a_o book_n call_v the_o capitulary_a decree_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a who_o as_o popin_n his_o predecessor_n have_v do_v in_o the_o city_n of_o bourge_n so_o do_v he_o also_o assemble_v many_o council_n in_o divers_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o at_o mayns_n at_o tours_n at_o rein_n at_o chaalon_n at_o arles_n and_o the_o sixth_o most_o famous_a of_o all_o at_o francfort_n where_o himself_o be_v present_a in_o person_n and_o condemn_v the_o error_n of_o felician_n and_o so_o other_o king_n of_o france_n and_o the_o king_n of_o our_o own_o kingdom_n of_o england_n both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o conquest_n as_o master_n fox_n plentiful_o record_v do_v make_v many_o law_n and_o constitution_n for_o the_o government_n of_o god_n church_n dioclesian_n the_o say_n of_o dioclesian_n but_o as_o dioclesian_n that_o be_v neither_o the_o best_a nor_o the_o happy_a governor_n say_v most_o true_o of_o the_o civil_a government_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o hara_a the_o n_z to_o rule_v well_o commonwealth_n well_o that_o be_v to_o rule_v the_o commonwealth_n so_o it_o be_v much_o hard_a to_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o as_o there_o can_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o great_a wisdom_n in_o a_o prince_n nor_o any_o thing_n of_o great_a safety_n and_o felicity_n to_o the_o commonwealth_n then_o for_o he_o to_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o wise_a council_n to_o assist_v he_o in_o his_o most_o weighty_a affair_n 12._o tacitus_n annal._n lib._n 12._o say_v cornelius_n tacitus_n so_o all_o religious_a king_n must_v do_v the_o like_a in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o make_n of_o their_o law_n for_o that_o government_n for_o god_n out_o of_o his_o great_a mercy_n to_o they_o and_o no_o less_o desire_n to_o have_v his_o people_n religious_o govern_v leave_v such_o man_n to_o be_v their_o supporter_n their_o helper_n and_o adviser_n in_o the_o performance_n of_o these_o duty_n and_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o do_v king_n choose_v for_o this_o business_n but_o who_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n for_o you_o may_v observe_v that_o although_o those_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n make_v their_o law_n as_o have_v the_o supremacy_n and_o the_o chief_a c●re_n of_o god_n religion_n commit_v by_o god_n into_o their_o hand_n yet_o they_o do_v never_o make_v they_o that_o ever_o i_o can_v read_v with_o the_o advice_n counsel_n or_o direction_n of_o any_o of_o their_o peer_n or_o lay_v subject_n but_o as_o david_n have_v nathan_n and_o god_n 123._o the_o good_a king_n &_o emperor_n make_v their_o law_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n only_o by_o the_o adv_n ce_fw-fr of_o their_o clergy_n a_o good_a law_n of_o instinian_n constit_fw-la 123._o n●bu●hadnezzar_n have_v daniel_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jewish_a king_n and_o heathen_n have_v their_o prophet_n only_o and_o priest_n to_o direct_v they_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o religion_n so_o those_o chr_n stian_a king_n and_o prince_n take_v their_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n only_o to_o be_v their_o counsellor_n and_o
esteem_v and_o expel_v as_o deadly_a enemy_n but_o to_o be_v suffer_v and_o respect_v as_o weak_a friend_n if_o they_o proceed_v not_o to_o be_v turbulent_a and_o malicious_a who_o then_o may_v prove_v to_o be_v more_o dangerous_a both_o to_o church_n and_o state_n than_o any_o of_o the_o former_a sort_n that_o profess_v their_o religion_n with_o peace_n and_o quietness_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o profession_n of_o this_o or_o that_o religion_n but_o the_o malice_n and_o wickedness_n of_o the_o professor_n suffer_v what_o wrong_a professor_n be_v chief_o to_o be_v suffer_v that_o be_v the_o bane_n and_o poison_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o it_o rest_v for_o what_o be_v diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n and_o our_o saviour_n show_v that_o the_o tare_n shall_v not_o be_v pluck_v up_o but_o suffer_v to_o grow_v with_o the_o wheat_n to_o teach_v we_o 13.29_o matth._n 13.29_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o external_a communion_n and_o civil_a conversation_n all_o sort_n of_o professor_n may_v live_v together_o though_o in_o respect_n of_o our_o spiritual_a communion_n and_o exercise_n of_o our_o religion_n the_o heretic_n shall_v be_v cast_v forth_o ungodly_a why_o to_o be_v suffer_v either_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o godly_a or_o in_o hope_n to_o convert_v the_o ungodly_a and_o be_v unto_o i_o tanquam_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la &_o publicanus_fw-la with_o who_o notwithstanding_o i_o may_v converse_v as_o our_o saviour_n do_v with_o hope_n that_o i_o may_v convert_v they_o unto_o he_o which_o can_v never_o be_v do_v if_o they_o shall_v be_v quite_o exclude_v our_o company_n and_o banish_v from_o all_o holy_a society_n and_o therefore_o as_o the_o prudent_a prince_n see_v the_o disposition_n and_o observe_v the_o conversation_n of_o any_o faction_n and_o the_o turbulence_n of_o any_o sect_n so_o he_o know_v best_o how_o to_o advise_v with_o his_o council_n to_o grant_v his_o toleration_n to_o they_o that_o best_o deserve_v it_o not_o so_o much_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o meliority_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o their_o peaceable_a and_o harmless_a habitation_n among_o their_o neighbour_n without_o rail_v against_o their_o faith_n or_o rebel_a against_o their_o prince_n and_o thus_o as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v i_o see_v not_o any_o sect_n or_o any_o sort_n of_o professor_n that_o for_o turbulence_n of_o spirit_n madness_n of_o zeal_n and_o violency_n of_o hatred_n and_o persecution_n to_o the_o true_a protestant_n be_v more_o dangerous_a to_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o deserve_v less_o favour_n from_o their_o pious_a prince_n than_o these_o anabaptist_n brownist_n and_o puritan_n that_o have_v so_o malicious_o plot_v and_o so_o rebellious_o prosecute_v their_o damnable_a design_n to_o the_o utter_a ruin_n both_o of_o church_n and_o state_n puritan_n doctor_n covell_n cap._n 15._o p._n 2_o ●●_o his_o description_n of_o the_o puritan_n doctor_n covell_n long_o ago_o when_o they_o be_v not_o half_a so_o bad_a as_o they_o be_v now_o say_v they_o pretend_v gravity_n reprehend_v severe_o speak_v glorious_o and_o all_o in_o hypocrisy_n they_o daily_o invent_v new_a opinion_n and_o run_v from_o error_n to_o error_n their_o wilfulness_n they_o account_v constancy_n their_o deserve_a punishment_n persecution_n their_o mouth_n be_v ever_o open_a to_o speak_v evil_a they_o give_v neither_o reverence_n nor_o title_n to_o any_o in_o place_n above_o they_o 82._o and_o to_o confirm_v this_o description_n read_v what_o king_n james_n write_v of_o they_o in_o his_o basilicon_fw-la doron_n p._n 160._o &_o 161_o and_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n in_o anno_fw-la 603._o p._n 81_o 82._o in_o one_o word_n the_o church_n can_v fear_v a_o more_o dangerous_a and_o fatal_a enemy_n to_o her_o peace_n and_o happiness_n a_o great_a cloud_n to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n a_o strong_a hand_n to_o pull_v in_o barbarism_n and_o poverty_n into_o all_o our_o land_n a_o more_o furious_a monster_n to_o breed_v contempt_n and_o disobedience_n in_o all_o estate_n a_o more_o fret_a canker_n to_o the_o very_a marrow_n and_o sinew_n of_o this_o church_n and_o kingdom_n than_o this_o beast_n who_o be_v proud_a without_o learning_n presumptuous_a without_o authority_n zealous_a without_o knowledge_n holy_a without_o religion_n and_o in_o brief_a a_o most_o dangerous_a and_o malicious_a hypocrite_n and_o be_v therefore_o banish_v from_o among_o we_o in_o the_o day_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o now_o deserve_v it_o far_o better_a be_v more_o dangerous_a because_o far_o more_o numerous_a jesuit_n numerous_a huc_fw-la usque_fw-la our_o factious_a puritan_n bitter_a against_o king_n than_o the_o jesuit_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v say_v with_o saint_n bernard_n aut_fw-la corrigendi_fw-la nè_fw-la pereant_fw-la aut_fw-la coercendi_fw-la nè_fw-la perimant_fw-la for_o in_o my_o judgement_n they_o be_v incorrigible_a and_o in_o their_o own_o opinion_n they_o be_v invincible_a have_v by_o lie_n and_o fraud_n gather_v so_o much_o wealth_n and_o unite_v such_o strength_n together_o that_o except_o the_o lord_n himself_o have_v be_v on_o our_o side_n and_o make_v our_o very_a enemy_n the_o papist_n to_o become_v our_o friend_n and_o to_o hazard_v their_o life_n and_o fortune_n according_a to_o their_o duty_n to_o preserve_v the_o crown_n and_o dignity_n of_o their_o king_n as_o god_n most_o wise_o dispose_v of_o thing_n when_o he_o produce_v light_a out_o of_o darkness_n and_o against_o their_o will_n support_v our_o true_a protestant_a religion_n from_o be_v quite_o deface_v by_o these_o merciless_a enemy_n we_o may_v well_o fear_v what_o destruction_n will_v have_v come_v upon_o we_o and_o therefore_o consider_v the_o bitter_a writing_n of_o their_o prophet_n old_a and_o new_a be_v full_a of_o gall_n and_o venom_n against_o christian_a king_n then_o can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o consider_v the_o wicked_a practice_n and_o this_o unparalleled_a rebellion_n of_o these_o new_a proselyte_n and_o the_o loyalty_n of_o those_o that_o heretofore_o receive_v least_o favour_n from_o the_o church_n and_o not_o much_o from_o the_o state_n tell_v i_o i_o pray_v you_o which_o of_o these_o deserve_v best_a to_o be_v suffer_v in_o a_o protestant_a church_n they_o that_o malicious_o seek_v her_o ruin_n or_o they_o that_o unwilling_o support_v she_o from_o fall_v for_o myself_o i_o will_v ever_o be_v of_o the_o true_a protestant_a faith_n yet_o for_o this_o loyalty_n of_o the_o papist_n unto_o their_o king_n i_o will_v ever_o be_v in_o charity_n and_o rest_n in_o hope_n though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o his_o majesty_n will_v think_v well_o of_o their_o fidelity_n but_o as_o saint_n bernard_n say_v non_fw-la est_fw-la meae_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la dictitare_fw-la vobis_fw-la it_o be_v not_o for_o i_o to_o prescribe_v who_o be_v most_o capable_a of_o grace_n or_o who_o best_o deserve_v the_o king_n favour_n when_o his_o princely_a grace_n presuppose_v a_o sufficient_a merit_n but_o in_o humility_n to_o set_v down_o my_o own_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n of_o toleration_n with_o submission_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o church_n wherein_o also_o i_o humble_o desire_v my_o reader_n not_o to_o mistake_v i_o as_o if_o i_o mean_v such_o a_o public_a and_o legal_a toleration_n as_o may_v breed_v a_o great_a distraction_n in_o a_o kingdom_n than_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o state_n can_v well_o master_n and_o raise_v more_o spirit_n than_o they_o can_v lay_v down_o but_o such_o as_o i_o have_v express_v in_o my_o grand_a rebellion_n 6._o grand_fw-fr rebellion_n p._n 5_o 6._o that_o be_v a_o favourable_a connivance_n to_o enjoy_v their_o own_o conscience_n so_o long_o as_o they_o live_v in_o peace_n and_o amity_n with_o their_o neighbour_n but_o without_o any_o public_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o can_v produce_v nothing_o else_o but_o discord_n distraction_n and_o destruction_n to_o that_o kingdom_n where_o two_o religion_n be_v profess_v in_o aequilibrio_fw-la with_o the_o same_o privilege_n and_o authority_n these_o and_o many_o more_o be_v the_o right_n of_o king_n grant_v they_o by_o god_n for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n which_o they_o be_v to_o look_v unto_o and_o to_o protect_v in_o all_o her_o right_n service_n maintenance_n ordinance_n governor_n and_o the_o like_a if_o they_o look_v that_o god_n shall_v bless_v and_o protect_v they_o in_o their_o way_n dignity_n and_o due_n because_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n and_o the_o first_o charge_n that_o god_n lay_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v nurse_v father_n unto_o his_o church_n for_o god_n know_v the_o church_n shall_v have_v many_o enemy_n &_o intus_fw-la est_fw-la equus_fw-la trojanus_n and_o they_o be_v the_o worst_a that_o be_v near_a unto_o king_n and_o do_v with_o judas_n kiss_v with_o fair_a word_n and_o machiavilian_a counsel_n betray_v both_o
be_v make_v but_o though_o it_o be_v a_o axiom_n infallible_a not_o liable_a to_o controlment_n and_o a_o truth_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o impropriation_n of_o tithe_n and_o the_o alienation_n of_o land_n house_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v nor_o can_v be_v enjoy_v as_o their_o own_o proper_a good_n by_o any_o lie_v person_n be_v he_o lord_n knight_n or_o what_o you_o will_v contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o the_o donor_n without_o commit_v that_o horrible_a sin_n of_o sacrilege_n yet_o you_o must_v not_o so_o understand_v i_o person_n how_o the_o tithe_n land_n and_o house_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v let_v and_o set_v to_o lay_v person_n as_o if_o i_o conceive_v that_o minister_n may_v not_o set_v their_o tithe_n or_o let_v their_o land_n and_o their_o live_n to_o any_o lay-person_n or_o that_o it_o must_v be_v general_o understand_v that_o no_o commerce_n or_o bargain_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o good_n and_o endowment_n of_o the_o church_n because_o that_o as_o god_n be_v willing_a we_o shall_v use_v those_o good_n always_o for_o our_o benefit_n so_o he_o will_v be_v as_o gracious_o please_v we_o shall_v forgo_v they_o and_o exchange_v they_o when_o we_o find_v it_o for_o our_o benefit_n and_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o church_n and_o service_n which_o in_o all_o our_o bargain_n and_o commerce_n we_o ought_v chief_o to_o regard_n because_o we_o be_v but_o god_n steward_n for_o the_o service_n of_o his_o church_n and_o so_o whatsoever_o our_o religion_n and_o our_o ancestor_n have_v honour_v god_n withal_o we_o must_v employ_v not_o so_o much_o for_o our_o own_o best_a advantage_n as_o for_o that_o which_o make_v most_o for_o god_n honour_n and_o therefore_o we_o that_o be_v instruct_v with_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o portion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v not_o make_v such_o bargain_n for_o our_o master_n as_o glaucus_n make_v for_o himself_o when_o he_o change_v his_o golden_a armour_n for_o brazen_a furniture_n neither_o must_v we_o deal_v with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o rehoboam_n do_v with_o the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n 27._o 1_o reg._n 14.26_o 27._o when_o he_o take_v away_o all_o the_o shield_n of_o gold_n and_o make_v in_o their_o steed_n shield_n of_o brass_n but_o what_o bargain_n or_o covenant_n soever_o we_o make_v without_o sin_n for_o the_o great_a glory_n unto_o god_n and_o great_a good_a unto_o the_o church_n we_o hold_v it_o good_a with_o whosoever_o the_o same_o be_v make_v chap._n xix_o that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n to_o do_v their_o best_a endeavour_n to_o have_v all_o the_o impropriation_n restore_v to_o their_o former_a institution_n to_o hinder_v the_o take_v away_o and_o the_o alienation_n of_o the_o land_n house_n and_o other_o the_o religious_a donation_n of_o our_o ancestor_n from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o suppress_v and_o root_v out_o all_o the_o unjust_a and_o covetous_a subtle_a custom_n and_o fraud_n that_o be_v so_o general_o use_v and_o be_v so_o derogatory_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n from_o among_o the_o people_n and_o especial_o from_o this_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n where_o most_o corruption_n be_v use_v and_o most_o need_n of_o instruction_n unto_o the_o people_n thus_o you_o have_v hear_v how_o that_o cathedral_n and_o other_o parochial_a church_n shall_v be_v build_v and_o beautify_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n godly_a bishop_n and_o preacher_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o they_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o then_o the_o allowance_n that_o god_n have_v appoint_v shall_v be_v give_v and_o yield_v unto_o they_o for_o their_o maintenance_n and_o now_o because_o the_o land_n house_n tithe_n and_o hereditament_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o lord_n god_n have_v grant_v and_o the_o godly_a emperor_n pious_a king_n and_o zealous_a professor_n have_v give_v and_o dedicate_v for_o god_n service_n be_v in_o these_o dismal_a day_n snatch_v away_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o hackster_n and_o hater_n of_o religion_n and_o alienate_v by_o the_o soldier_n that_o divide_v christ_n his_o garment_n among_o they_o from_o the_o true_a servant_n and_o minister_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v be_v very_o thankful_a unto_o these_o soldier_n as_o they_o often_o say_v that_o we_o have_v any_o thing_n leave_v unto_o we_o for_o as_o the_o orator_n tell_v the_o grave_a senator_n of_o rome_n of_o a_o audacious_a fellow_n call_v fimbria_n that_o stab_v quintus_fw-la scaevola_n a_o honest_a man_n amerino_fw-la cicero_n in_o orat._n pro_fw-la roscio_n amerino_fw-la at_o the_o funeral_n of_o caius_n marius_n and_o then_o boast_v of_o the_o great_a favour_n that_o he_o show_v to_o he_o quòd_fw-la non_fw-la totum_fw-la telum_fw-la in_o ejus_fw-la corpore_fw-la absconderat_fw-la that_o he_o have_v not_o thrust_v his_o dagger_n whole_o to_o the_o hilt_n into_o his_o body_n but_o only_o give_v he_o a_o slight_a stab_n that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o kill_v he_o so_o these_o brood_n of_o fimbria_n have_v seize_v upon_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o house_n land_n and_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o still_o detain_v they_o per_fw-la fas_fw-la &_o nefas_fw-la in_o their_o own_o hand_n do_v labour_n to_o get_v more_o and_o think_v the_o favour_n that_o they_o have_v do_v we_o deserve_v no_o small_a thanks_o that_o they_o bring_v or_o leave_v to_o we_o what_o we_o have_v and_o have_v not_o deprive_v we_o of_o all_o together_o therefore_o covetousness_n injustice_n and_o the_o love_n of_o this_o world_n be_v so_o deep_o ground_v and_o settle_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o our_o demas_n and_o this_o epidemical_a disease_n of_o take_v and_o detain_v the_o church_n right_a be_v as_o one_o say_v just_a like_o the_o kings-evil_a which_o no_o physician_n but_o the_o king_n himself_o will_v serve_v to_o heal_v it_o our_o address_n must_v be_v unto_o his_o majesty_n to_o supplicate_v that_o he_o will_v be_v gracious_o please_v to_o interpose_v his_o royal_a command_n to_o stop_v the_o current_n of_o these_o intruder_n into_o god_n right_a and_o to_o cause_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o church-goods_a to_o be_v make_v unto_o the_o church_n and_o among_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o injury_n do_v by_o these_o military_a vituperaverint_fw-la military_a i_o speak_v of_o the_o soldier_n because_o either_o the_o soldier_n of_o that_o parliament_n or_o of_o crumwel_n or_o his_o majesty_n have_v almost_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n and_o do_v fill_v the_o house_n of_o lord_n and_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o and_o be_v the_o chief_a man_n in_o every_o place_n so_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v do_v either_o in_o parliament_n city_n or_o country_n but_o what_o they_o will_v have_v do_v because_o they_o be_v the_o major_a party_n and_o so_o can_v out-vote_n all_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o ireland_n be_v now_o regnum_fw-la militum_fw-la this_o my_o discourse_n can_v be_v gratum_fw-la opus_fw-la agricolis_fw-la but_o ingratum_fw-la militibus_fw-la which_o be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o if_o you_o consider_v what_o i_o say_v in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o book_n and_o that_o i_o fear_v not_o what_o they_o say_v of_o i_o quia_fw-la nec_fw-la melior_fw-la sum_fw-la si_fw-la laudeverint_fw-la nec_fw-la deterior_fw-la si_fw-la vituperaverint_fw-la man_n to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n there_o be_v one_o great_a abuse_n which_o be_v general_o use_v and_o practise_v here_o in_o ireland_n by_o the_o rich_a proprietor_n and_o possessor_n of_o land_n and_o town-ship_n to_o the_o abundant_a detriment_n and_o loss_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o to_o the_o hazard_n and_o danger_n if_o not_o the_o destruction_n of_o many_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o soul_n and_o that_o be_v when_o the_o gentleman_n proprietor_n that_o hold_v all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o parish_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n if_o he_o be_v offend_v with_o his_o minister_n and_o can_v have_v the_o tithe_n as_o he_o please_v himself_o he_o can_v make_v the_o rectory_n or_o vicarage_n that_o may_v be_v well_o worth_a fifty_o or_o sixty_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la to_o be_v scarce_o worth_a ten_o pound_n a_o year_n or_o nothing_o for_o he_o will_v leave_v all_o his_o ground_n unplow_a and_o turn_v it_o to_o pasture_n and_o so_o bring_v a_o dearth_n through_o the_o scarcity_n of_o corn_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o then_o he_o will_v buy_v young_a bullock_n and_o fill_v his_o land_n with_o dry_a cattle_n whereof_o their_o religious_a lawyer_n of_o who_o dr._n gardiner_n sacrilege_n gardiner_n dr._n gardiner_n in_o his_o scourge_n of_o sacrilege_n say_v that_o he_o never_o hear_v yet_o at_o any_o hand_n of_o any_o good_a that_o they_o have_v prophesy_v unto_o the_o church_n tell_v they_o their_o custom_n will_v preserve_v they_o from_o the_o payment_n of_o any_o
tithe_n and_o so_o they_o bring_v a_o spiritual_a dearth_n and_o a_o famine_n of_o god_n word_n unto_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o poor_a parishioner_n when_o for_o want_v of_o sufficient_a maintenance_n they_o shall_v want_v a_o sufficient_a minister_n that_o be_v able_a to_o give_v they_o any_o instruction_n because_o as_o the_o poet_n say_v nulla_fw-la illis_fw-la captetur_fw-la gloria_fw-la 5._o ovid._n trist_n lib._n 5._o quaeque_fw-la ingenii_n stimulos_fw-la subdere_fw-la fama_fw-la solet_fw-la and_o the_o benefit_n that_o these_o worldling_n reap_v by_o this_o lawless_a impious_a and_o wicked_a custom_n to_o pay_v no_o tithe_n for_o their_o dry_a bullock_n nor_o any_o thing_n to_o god_n for_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o ground_n be_v one_o main_a reason_n why_o the_o minister_n part_n of_o six_o or_o seven_o parish_n do_v scarce_o amount_v to_o twenty_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la as_o i_o have_v former_o show_v in_o my_o remonstrance_n to_o his_o majesty_n and_o i_o conceive_v it_o likewise_o to_o be_v a_o special_a reason_n why_o the_o poor_a simple_a irish_a papist_n have_v so_o many_o popish_a priest_n among_o they_o for_o want_v of_o protestant_a priest_n for_o that_o want_v of_o sufficient_a maintenance_n do_v cause_v they_o to_o leave_v their_o parish_n and_o charge_v unlooked_a unto_o and_o their_o flock_n untaught_a and_o then_o the_o superstitious_a mendicant_a friar_n come_v to_o instruct_v and_o lead_v the_o silly_a ignorant_a irish_a as_o he_o please_v and_o true_o to_o say_v what_o i_o think_v though_o i_o be_o far_o enough_o from_o popery_n and_o from_o all_o popish_a error_n and_o superstition_n as_o i_o hope_v all_o the_o sermon_n that_o i_o have_v preach_v and_o the_o book_n that_o i_o have_v print_v can_v bear_v witness_n unto_o the_o world_n yet_o as_o alexander_n severus_n tell_v a_o unruly_a victualler_n that_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o christian_n to_o erect_v a_o church_n in_o a_o place_n which_o he_o think_v more_o convenient_a and_o fit_a for_o he_o to_o sell_v ale_n in_o it_o that_o it_o be_v better_a god_n shall_v be_v serve_v in_o any_o place_n and_o in_o any_o way_n then_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v his_o way_n and_o god_n not_o serve_v in_o any_o place_n nor_o any_o way_n as_o i_o show_v to_o you_o before_o so_o i_o conceive_v it_o better_a to_o be_v superstitious_a then_o profane_a better_a to_o be_v a_o papist_n than_o a_o atheist_n and_o better_a to_o have_v a_o popish_a priest_n to_o give_v some_o light_n to_o they_o that_o sit_v in_o darkness_n and_o some_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n to_o they_o that_o otherwise_o will_v know_v nothing_o than_o not_o to_o have_v any_o priest_n at_o all_o and_o therefore_o if_o you_o will_v abandon_v popery_n and_o suppress_v all_o popish_a priest_n out_o of_o ireland_n which_o be_v my_o heart_n desire_n then_o i_o desire_v withal_o that_o this_o and_o all_o other_o lewd_a and_o wicked_a custom_n be_v take_v away_o the_o land_n house_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n be_v restore_v and_o all_o impropriation_n reduce_v to_o their_o first_o institution_n that_o so_o a_o sufficient_a ministry_n may_v be_v maintain_v here_o in_o ireland_n as_o they_o be_v in_o england_n and_o that_o the_o poor_a ignorant_a irish_a may_v have_v honest_a and_o able_a protestant_a minister_n neglect_v and_o to_o that_o end_n the_o native_n according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o college_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o the_o college_n at_o dublin_n the_o which_o thing_n hitherto_o they_o say_v have_v be_v too_o much_o neglect_v and_o as_o many_o as_o may_v be_v of_o their_o own_o nation_n to_o live_v among_o they_o and_o to_o instruct_v they_o and_o then_o god_n will_v bless_v this_o nation_n and_o the_o true_a protestant_a religion_n will_v prosper_v and_o flourish_v and_o both_o we_o and_o they_o shall_v live_v happy_o together_o which_o otherwise_o will_v very_o hardly_o if_o ever_o come_v to_o pass_v because_o that_o now_o we_o have_v not_o our_o knowledge_n by_o inspiration_n we_o can_v in_o a_o instant_n understand_v and_o speak_v all_o tongue_n and_o we_o can_v work_v miracle_n but_o we_o must_v buy_v many_o book_n to_o learn_v language_n and_o to_o get_v knowledge_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v without_o any_o book_n and_o we_o must_v spend_v our_o time_n in_o read_v write_a studying_z and_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o assist_v we_o and_o to_o enable_v we_o to_o instruct_v our_o people_n and_o all_o this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o maintenance_n and_o mean_n to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o where_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a maintenance_n there_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a ministry_n no_o instruct_n of_o the_o people_n no_o true_a serve_v of_o god_n as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v and_o what_o a_o heap_n of_o unspeakable_a mischief_n and_o misery_n do_v these_o evil_a custom_n impropriation_n and_o take_v away_o the_o land_n house_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n bring_v among_o we_o and_o therefore_o see_v the_o soldier_n captain_n and_o other_o of_o the_o military_a rank_n that_o have_v get_v the_o land_n of_o the_o irish_a rebel_n which_o for_o their_o service_n they_o have_v just_o deserve_v have_v likewise_o unjust_o seize_v upon_o god_n part_n and_o the_o land_n house_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v as_o fast_o wed_v to_o these_o evil_n as_o to_o their_o wife_n so_o that_o we_o can_v more_o easy_o overcome_v goliath_n or_o pull_v the_o club_n out_o of_o hercules_n hand_n than_o our_o land_n out_o of_o these_o man_n finger_n it_o be_v high_a time_n and_o i_o hope_v no_o good_a man_n will_v be_v offend_v with_o we_o for_o it_o to_o implore_v and_o most_o humble_o to_o beg_v and_o beseech_v the_o help_n and_o assistance_n of_o our_o most_o gracious_a king_n to_o redress_v these_o intolerable_a abuse_n and_o to_o drive_v away_o this_o three-headed_a cerberus_n or_o rather_o this_o many-headed_a hydra_n the_o manifold_a sacrilege_n and_o the_o great_a oppression_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v use_v in_o these_o day_n and_o especial_o in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o ireland_n at_o this_o time_n for_o i_o call_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o witness_v that_o ever_o since_o the_o monstrous_a undutiful_a and_o unnatural_a murder_n of_o that_o most_o glorious_a martyr_n your_o majesty_n be_v most_o dear_a father_n my_o most_o gracious_a master_n charles_n the_o first_o until_o the_o happy_a arrival_n of_o your_o gracious_a majesty_n i_o live_v more_o quiet_o and_o content_o when_o all_o my_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n be_v take_v from_o i_o and_o not_o 20_o pound_n per_fw-la annum_fw-la leave_v i_o in_o all_o the_o world_n to_o maintain_v i_o than_o now_o i_o do_v when_o by_o your_o gracious_a goodness_n all_o the_o church_n right_n and_o inheritance_n be_v command_v unresistable_o to_o be_v yield_v unto_o we_o for_o your_o majesty_n may_v be_v well_o assure_v that_o they_o which_o neither_o for_o love_n of_o god_n favour_n nor_o fear_v of_o his_o vengeance_n will_v observe_v god_n commandment_n will_v never_o regard_v to_o obey_v your_o commandment_n and_o therefore_o many_o of_o our_o military_a man_n colonel_n captain_n and_o other_o that_o fight_v for_o the_o long-parliament_n and_o crumwell_n do_v with_o some_o of_o your_o commander_n that_o herein_o imitate_v they_o divide_v and_o tear_v the_o revenue_n and_o garment_n of_o the_o church_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n worse_a than_o the_o soldier_n of_o pilate_n do_v with_o the_o coat_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o now_o in_o my_o old_a age_n well-nigh_o 80._o year_n i_o be_o force_v to_o bestow_v all_o my_o labour_n and_o take_v pain_n and_o many_o journey_n which_o a_o old_a man_n can_v hardly_o do_v and_o spend_v all_o my_o mean_n in_o law_n which_o be_v better_o bestow_v upon_o the_o poor_a to_o wring_v the_o church-mean_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n or_o suffer_v the_o same_o through_o my_o remissness_n to_o be_v swallow_v down_o into_o the_o belly_n of_o hell_n and_o leave_v myself_o to_o be_v liable_a to_o that_o great_a account_n which_o i_o must_v render_v for_o my_o neglect_n of_o do_v my_o uttermost_a endeavour_n to_o recover_v it_o at_o the_o last_o day_n the_o which_o wonderful_a straight_o that_o i_o be_o put_v to_o do_v wonderful_o discontent_a and_o trouble_v i_o continual_o which_o make_v i_o oftentimes_o to_o think_v that_o i_o be_v better_a to_o resign_v my_o bishopric_n if_o i_o know_v it_o be_v no_o offence_n to_o god_n to_o some_o young_a man_n that_o can_v better_o combat_v with_o these_o golias_n than_o for_o i_o to_o agonize_v as_o i_o do_v to_o recover_v my_o right_n who_o may_v well_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o poet_n impar_fw-la congressus_fw-la achilli_n but_o the_o nearness_n of_o the_o time_n that_o i_o must_v render_v my_o account_n of_o my_o stewardship_n unto_o god_n have_v strengthen_v i_o to_o write_v this_o treatise_n against_o